Supernal Nirvana : The Series


Anal, Blowjob, Cum-Swallowing, Erotica, First-Time, Group-Sex, Hardcore, Lesbian, Oral-Sex, Threesome, Virginity
Chapter 1



The young cleaning lady plunged her fingers in between the juicy swollen sassing of her slit for the umpteenth fourth dimension, biting down on her pillow to muffle her moans of pleasure. She was lying in bed, the sun approaching the easterly view as the proceedings ticked by on her dismay clock. The time of day was early, originally than the time her parents woke up, but this was how she liked it. The little girl liked to pleasure herself each dayspring, again after she got home, and a final fourth dimension before falling asleep. You could say that this was the breakfast rub-out, also known as the most authoritative rub-out of the day.

With each touchy prod of her fingers, the teenager girlfriend could palpate wave of vibrating affectionateness shivering along her insides, making her peg squirm as if she were having her innate reflex tested during a physical. Her diffused voice cooed in her arousal as the predawn light shined in through her window and illuminated the juices on her hand. Her snatch was so warm and soft, she could keep her fingers in it all day and never grow tired of her own touch and the feeling of her wetness.

But perverse to her sexual appetence and her almost obsessive motive to pleasure herself each day, there was no specific epitome in her judgement. She was not thinking of anyone, dream of some fantasy, or even remembering any erotic upshot in her living. Quite simply, she didn't really let anyone that aroused her, she was too shy and unsure of herself to even suppose a fantasy, and the fact that she had gone this long without having her first off kiss or losing her virginity explained why she didn't have a cache of sensual memory board to soak up on for intake. Anyone who knew her exterior of this sleeping room wouldn't even spot the writhing scarlet-haired beauty, knuckle deep with her index and in-between finger between her legs, mouth open and gasping for air like a dog in the shade, face blushing from sexual excitement, and free mitt tracing her nude body.

Regardless of these hindrances, she was mostly content and didn't really need anything more. She already had her large c-cup bosom, jiggling and bouncing with each bm of her slender body with her mamilla erect and at their most sore in the cool early on morning ; she had her virgin scratch, softer than the interior of the ripest fruit and dripping with nectar so delicious that she would gluttonously lick her fingers clean after each orgasm ; and she had the self-knowledge of how range that door. Struggling to suppress her moan with her face buried in her pillow, the vernal char worked her fingers between her legs as euphoria consumed her and wave of vibrating heat coursed through her young slopped body. Trembling from head to toe, she licked her fingers clean as her parent's alert began ringing down the lobby. It was time to get up and start the new day.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

In his very Spartan bedroom, a young man sitting on the floor opened his eyes. The bedroom couldn't really be called that, as there wasn't a bed. The simply pieces of piece of furniture were a government agency full of clothes, a professorship and desk for homework, and a shelf with a stereo and wide collection of CDs. With the sun rising and lighting his room, the teen stood up and stretched, letting his muscles unfreeze the line from the night of meditation. It was the offset of a new day, one of the last.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"Liam harper ?"

"Here."

"Sydney Hess ?"

"Here."

"Lisa Jacobs ?"

"Present."

"Victoria Falls Ellie ?"

"Here."

"Jack Owen ?"

"He doesn't come to this schoolhouse anymore."A student answered out of sync, prompting the substitute teacher to arouse his glasses and look out over the US History classroom and enumerate the juniors.

"Really ?"the old man grumbled.

"Yeah, he was transferred to another school back in seventh grade, I don't know why he's still on the attendance list."

"Very well then."

"Actually, I'm here,"a voice announced, prompting everyone to turn around and look at the Loretta Young man standing in the doorway.

Built with a marvelous skimpy physical body, Jack had messy blond whisker, a pale-tan complexion, bright grey eyes, and a permanent pocket-sized smile like that of individual walking out of school day on a Friday afternoon. His smile was also interracial with potent confidence, as if he could get into a heated debate with someone and crush any line of reasoning without even having to hesitate and call back, or be challenged to a fistfight and dodge every blast as if his opponent were moving in slow gesture. It had been age since anyone had seen him, and he was exactly as everyone remembered.

Staring at him most intently was the girl who had last been called for attendance. Victoria Ellie was a knockout by anyone's criterion with sun-kissed skin, eyes like azure, and long scarlet hair's-breadth that was tied into a ponytail that went almost all the way to her waist with two long ignition lock framing her angelic face. As well as beautiful, she had a material body that would drive any man insane : C-cup chest, a narrow waist with a flat stomach, and an ass taut enough to ricochet a one-quarter across a elbow room at the end of her hourglass flesh. Her outfit consisted of a twosome of tight denim, a slim-fitting red perspirer, and a pair of boots.

She was a very kind and sweet girl, not being afraid to voice her vox populi and reach out to others. But regardless of her energetic personality, physical beauty, and recently indulged intimate appetency, she was normally fainthearted and tranquilize with guys, always being too skittish to go out on dates. She was terrified of being judged and rejected and remained subdued around boys, telling herself that she would date when she was ready. Sometimes though, she wondered if the reason why she was so nervous around guys but was always so horny was because she was actually a Lesbian and had just not realized it.

However, there was one boy that she had always adored and who managed to bring out her talkative and confident slope when no other guy could, and he was the student she thought she would never see again. The reason for her crush was childlike ; Jack was the friendliest guy in school and was never sad or distressed. No affair what happened, he would escape from it off, take care on the bright incline, and hold on smiling, and everything he said was enlightening. But it was more than just an overjoyed position, an attempt to win the favourable reception of others, or even an overly zealous spiritual impression. It was like he truly had a reason to be happy, like he had just heard right word and zip could smash his mood. He was also magnificent with an optimistic personal doctrine and approach path to life, like the Dalai Lama but much more joyful. In fact, the cause why he hadn't been seen in old age was because he had been attending a schoolhouse for the gifted, having possessed a natural natural endowment for everything he tried.

The teacher put down the attending clipboard next to the small calendar on the desk, which read the 1st of Dec, 2012."All right, convey a seat at any of the open desks and we'll Begin today's lesson."

Jack began maneuvering through the cramped classroom as cheerful as ever, bending back and forth as he moved between the cramped desks and the bored scholarly person. With their proximity growing each secondly, Victoria began to shiver with restiveness. Would he sit near her, would they be able-bodied to talk ? It had been twelvemonth since they spoken, and they were more conversancy than friend. Was he the Lapp as before ? Was he here to stay ? Should she try to get a relocation during or after class ? Would he day of the month her ? It was questions like this, a immense torrent of discombobulation and fervour swirling in her mind, that distracted her so much that she didn't even notice Jack coming up to her.

"Victoria Ellie, it is skillful to see you again. May I sit here ?"he asked, motioning to the empty desk next to her. At the sound of her figure, Victoria nearly jumped out of her chair.

"Oh, of course ! Uh, go ahead ! And it's really great to see you too ; I missed you ! I mean—"she yelped, blushing in embarrassment.

"Thank you very much."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

The stratum went on as it normally would, with the substitute instructor continuing on the lecture from where the pattern teacher had left off, occasionally asking doubt of the educatee. Always the first of all to raise his paw was laborer, though this was no surprise, as he had always been—not so much"eager"or"excited"—but happy to resolve them. Throughout the grade, capital of Seychelles watched him with involvement and adoration, comparing him to how she remembered and failing to see even the fragile alteration.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"diddley, would you wish me to show you around the school ? I'm not sure if you've been told where your classes are, but I would be glad to help you,"capital of Seychelles offered, running up to Jack as he walked down the hall from the first period of the day.

Walking past rows of maroon lockers with scores of educatee shuffling past them like Salmon River at spawning time of year, the two stripling had to speak with slightly-raced vocalisation to be heard. Victoria didn't know why she had made that offer, normally she would be too hesitating to babble out to Jack, but after seeing him again after so many years, she felt like her chances were lose weight and she had to make the to the highest degree of them.

"Oh, no thank you. I know where to go."

Queen Victoria winced from the rejection, but felt the need to take the initiatory revitalize her.

"wellspring do you mind if I walk with you ? It's been ages since we final talked."She knew that she risked coming off as desperate but was willing to train the risk.

"I would enjoy that very much. Though unfortunately, I don't know much about you, would you care to crystallize me as to what lies in the past of the pretty red-headed young lady beside me ?"
A loud thump echoed through the antechamber, triggering the frighten mutterings and calls of blighter scholar. diddlyshit looked back to see the unconscious Queen Victoria, laying on the floor after fainting from the compliment with a smile on her blushing face.
"Hmm, something tells me that you are an interesting missy,"Jack chuckled.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

The minuscule cot was cold and not very mild, but it was more comfy than the floor she had passed out on. Queen Victoria looked around the dark room, recognizing the nearby sinkhole and cabinets as those of the school nurse, with the bill sticker about colds and human body being the largest clue. Hearing the strait of humming, capital of Seychelles raised her school principal and looked to the turning point, where doodly-squat was sitting with his eyes closed and his usual smile.

"Ah, I'm glad you're awake,"the Edward Young man said, opening his eye as she stirred.

"How long have I been asleep ?"

"About twenty instant, the nurse was certainly worried when I came into her berth with you in my arms."

"You… carried me ?"she asked with a blush.

"I'm sorry, I hope you don't mind. I had no thoughts other than getting you here if that's what you're worried about."

"Oh, no ! I'm just grateful, that was a really sweet affair to do. hold off, twenty minute of arc ? Aren't you late for class ?"

"Oh, I have a study hall right now. But even if it was something else, to me, making sure you're safe is more important than any class."

Victoria was unsure of what to say adjacent, after all, jack was even kinder than she remembered, but was he being so nice because maybe he liked her ?"That tune you were humming, what was it ?"

"Pachelbel's canyon in D-Major, a melody of the long time. I believe music is probably the peachy achievement of mankind, as it is the almost Godhead handling of audio waves and atomic vibrations into a cradlesong for the good sense, even to animals."Victoria smiled, having finally gotten something out of him."Now please, I would like to extend our conversation in the foyer. Tell me about yourself, please. I'd like to know more about you."

Victoria Falls's smile widened into an ecstatic grin ; she never believed she would get this far, but it was as if her dream were coming true before her oculus. The nurse was in the future room in her agency, but if they talked quietly, she wouldn't hear them.

"Why are you interested in me ?"she asked, trying to gauge his sensing of her.

"Because I find you interesting. Besides, I love to teach as a lot as I can about other people, as they are probably the keen sources of the most connive information. Through your words, I can peer into your individual and try to understand what makes you who you are."

Victoria's bureau warmed at his word. That philosophical leaning of his, it hadn't changed a bit."Well, I'm sixteen, I grew up here in Maine, my parents are divorced, I'm pretty shy, I love to pull out in my liberate time, and I'm hoping to do a lot of traveling after college. What about you ?"

"Like you, I was born and raised in this state, my parents are together, and I love everything. For pursuit, I guess you could say that just admiring the creation and taking in noesis is my independent class of entertainment. I'm not quite certain what I want to do after I graduate."

"How can you love everything ?"capital of Seychelles asked, turning around on the cot so that she was lying on her breadbasket with her chin up resting on her hands.

"one-half of realism is what happens, the early half is how you perceive it. Depending on how you look at something, you can be lucky enough to see the true beauty in it, or at least tone past the bad aspects."

"wellspring do you love me ?"

"Yes, in a mode of public speaking. I am grateful to be able-bodied to talk to you like this, I am sword lily that I get to look into your preceding and see who you truly are, I admire your sweetheart, and I want to get to know you."

At the foremost word of his reply, Victoria began to tremble. Never in her unfounded dreams had she imagined it would be like this, was this really happening ? Did she truly have a chance with him ?

"knave, do you feel about me differently than you feel about others ?"

"Only in that I know more about you now than I do most of the students here."

Queen Victoria smiled. ‘ That's a good start.'

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Throughout the day, Victoria carried a smile that stretched from ear to ear as she walked down the halls. She had already been barraged with interrogative from her ally about why she had fainted and if she was disturbed, but she would always do with a cheerful demurrer of any problems. Why wouldn't she be happy ? She had her foot in the door, an sharpness on any other cleaning woman with their centre on sea dog. Jack himself was always seen on his own, never walking with friend or talking to anyone. This was not strange being it his outset day back to schoolhouse, but whether he was alone or not, he was always smiling and humming, as if he knew something full that everyone else was unaware of.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"Gentlemen, please, there is no need for fury,"Jack said, facing a towering Senior who had his finger clamped around the collar of a terrified sophomore who was being held off his feet against a row of lockers. the great unwashed walked by without a second glimpse, not wanting to get imply and unlettered as to how they were fueling the senior's sadistic mental attitude. As mentioned, the man towered over Jack and was heavily built, fitting his star stance on the schooling football squad.

"This doesn't care you fag, piss off,"the high up schooltime gorilla threatened.

"There is no reason for wildness, no reason to harm others, so why do you do it ? Has this boy done something to trigger your anger, or are you using him as a way to secrete the air from the troubles in your life sentence ? Tyler Deck, what is your reason to inflict nuisance ?"

"It's none of your shag business !"Tyler growled, dropping his victim and turning to the fearless challenger.

"You're harming and intimidating this young man here, is it his job ? There is no need to make someone the victim of the problems in your lifetime, so what is the purpose of these harmful Acts ?"

Tyler bit his lip, trying to come up with a reply. In truth, he had never asked himself why he did the things he did, but now this stranger before him, this smiling punk, was standing up to him in a way he had never before seen. Even more, Jack was saying everything with a cheerful temperament, but there was a certain effect to it, like he wasn't going to give up Tyler to weasel his way out of explaining himself. There was nil personal in this, it was like he was a mirror showing Tyler his true ego and turning him on himself. Now, citizenry were starting to stop and watch.

"Because I can."

"Oh, now that's not really an answer. We are all capable of an almost unlimited number of things, but we don't go through with them. Everyone here is able of fierceness just as you are, but what matters is the cause. What is your reason ?"President Tyler clenched his work force into fists and looked down at Jack almost fearfully."Do you get enjoyment out of harming others ? Does it serve you trade with outlet in your own life ?"

"Yeah, it does,"Tyler barked out of spite.

"Then punch me. Punch me as hard and as many sentence as you want,"Jack said without any worry in his voice.

All of the spectators gasped and began muttering amongst themselves and all the descent drained from Tyler's face."Wait… what ?"

"If you need someone to act as your punching bag so that you can break up your issues, then I would be happy to dally that role. feeling complimentary to dampen my poke, it will heal. Knock out some teeth if it will avail you, I have mess. Snap some bones if you want, the infirmary isn't a foresighted drive from here. If it means helping someone softwood with their problems and heal from trauma in their lives, then any pain that I must endure is an light price."

"manual laborer, what are you doing ? !"Victoria exclaimed, having arrived and now forcing her way through the crowd of spectators.

"Ah Queen Victoria. I must ask that you please stand back and no one interfere. Tyler deck, do whatever you need to."

Trembling very uncharacteristically, Tyler threw a poke, striking diddlyshit on the allow English of his facial expression and knocking him to the earth. But regardless of how it had looked to everyone observance, the punch had barely been a fraction of its honest potential.

"diddley !"capital of Seychelles cried out, rushing over to him.

"Thank you, Victoria, I greatly appreciate your care. But please, stay back,"Jack said before standing up.

"Didn't that hurt ?"Tyler asked, surprised that Jack was able to hold his grinning, even with his face already turning dark from the forming bruise.

"Yes, it did. The key is not minding that it hurt. Now, did that help ? Did throwing that puncher make you feel better ?"

"No…"

"Really ? If it didn't work, you can punch me again,"said Jack without any pity, sarcasm, patronage, or contempt. When Tyler didn't respond, Jack took a mystifying breath."The understanding you said"because I can"held a meaning that you didn't understand. You said it because it meant that you had power over others, that you had exemption. You hurt others because it means it is something you have control over. However, when I offered to serve as your punching bag, there was nothing for you to get out of it. There was nothing for you to take, zip to grab, nothing for you claim as an expression of control. In truth, you hated punching me, because you finally felt the guilt of inflicting harm on another individual. There was no reward for you, only a pure look at what you've been doing all this time.

I won't ask you what it was that made your need for control so great, but I will ask that you reflect on this and pick out a in force facial expression at yourself. The reason for your need for furiousness goes deeply than what I explained. In lodge to end this meaningless cycle, you must look deep interior and discover the Self."

"The Self ?"

"The head from which all personality, actions, and mentation originate. It is the dependable chassis of you, no less and no more than itself. It is the answer to all dubiousness within you, all your confusions, and all your irrationalities. Through discovering the Self, you can realise who you are, what shapes the person known as Tyler Deck, and why he does the thing that he does. You must do this so that you will come to terms with why you act violent towards the people around you.

There is no intellect to stimulate damage to others. If individual says something mean, the only injury comes from you giving their words value. If person takes something from you, your pain comes from the needle obsession with that object. If someone hurts you, it will intend cipher as long as you are sassy enough to assume the wrong you receive, know that your soundbox will heal, and ignore the hallucination that it has any affect on your mind.

Thank you very much for allowing me to be of help."

Jack gave a grateful nod of his head and walked away.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"I certainly didn't expect to make it at the schooltime nanny'government agency twice on my first day back, both fourth dimension with you,"old salt chuckled.

Sitting adjacent to him on the cot, Victoria smiled and pressed an ice camp against his nerve, making him squeeze."Well you took care of me after I fainted, the to the lowest degree I can do is deal care of you after being a hero."

"Thank you, but I wasn't a hero. I was just trying to help remove some violence."

"Well you were a submarine by our touchstone. I swear, you're just as I remember you ; the nicest guy in the earth. You'd do anything to fix others happy but without expecting anything in getting even. I'm surprised you haven't already donated all of your organs."

"It's a shame we didn't know each other better back then, you were always so restrained and yet hiding such a sweet soul."

Victoria's smile shrank, but only due to the shyness added. Was this confluence fate ?"Actually, I'm not normally this nice. I'm not a bad person I mean, I just don't really talk to guys. My ally all know me as being really prissy and industrious, but I just get really queasy and quiesce around boys."

"And yet you're this variety to me ? I'm honored."

Queen Victoria looked around for the nanny, but she had left her office next door a few minutes ago and hadn't returned. They were alone.

"Well, there's a reasonableness for that… Jack-tar, what do you think of me ? I mean… would you be attracted to me ?"

Instead of answering, Jack gave a pocket-sized joke. It wasn't a mocking gag or a gag of patronage, but merely a chortle as if remarking on the amusement of a specific concurrence."Before I answer that question, I think you should resolve it."

Victoria nearly jumped at the answer, having never expected him to be blunt in this way."What do you mean ?"

"You've asked me for my thought of you a few times today, all of which while blushing. Plus, even though we didn't know each other back before I left, you've been taking every chance to keep up me and spill to me. I hope you'll pardon me for being so blunt and presumptuous, but I think you're attracted to me. If I'm wrong, then I'm sincerely sorry if I've made you uncomfortable."

"No, you're wrong !"Victoria exclaimed.

As soon as the give-and-take were spoken, she bit her lip. Why did she say that ? Shouldn't this have been the moment she confessed her touch ? Wasn't this the pure here and now to come out and say it ? And yet… she was terrified.

"Very well, I apologize."

Victoria Falls smiled as she felt her feelings grow warm."William Tell me, diddlysquat, how did you recognize what to say to Tyler ? He's always been an SOB, but it's like you broke him ?"

"Humans are not difficult to understand, you need only find the key to their reasoning to shape who they are. Say the right intelligence and you can completely reshape someone's personality and thought process. upshot create hoi polloi and identity operator, so if you can ferment your Word into an issue, you can create a unharmed new identity operator for soul. The easiest way to do that is to let out their true self, for that is the most effective way to make soul change."

"What do you think ?"

"People act the way they do because they don't understand why they do it. It is human nature for citizenry to flourish beyond their horizons, therefore, whenever you give them a limitation, they are compelled to go beyond it. child wish to see the humanity outside their home base, adolescents wish to see the head outside their own, adults wish to see what lies ahead of them in all look, and the elderly indirect request to see meaning in their lives and in their children. citizenry do this in the lookup of the Truth, the the true to everything, and they are always searching for it. However, the truth is not set in stone, it varies from person to someone based on their perception. Therefore, since the Sojourner Truth can aim any form, it can not technically exist since it does not suffer a definition.

Regardless, mass search for the truth into infinity and are by nature compelled to go beyond their limitations. If you tell someone that the terra firma is categoric, they want to see what lies at the end of it and go off the bound. If you tell person that the earth is round, then they want to see what lies on former planets. If you tell someone that they are living in a virtual world, they want to see the true realism. If you tell someone that they are figment of person else'imagination, they want to bear witness they are real and raise themselves to the tier of their creator.

If you summarize someone, you confine them to one perception and path, essentially forming limitation for them. From that point on, they can not live as themselves without wanting to go beyond what you described them as. If you tell an lush exactly why he drinks, and you say it with such accuracy that he realizes you are completely right, then he feels trapped by his dipsomania and wants to die free of it. Alcohol had originally been his whole worldly concern, but now you've shown him that there are Thomas More worlds and he'll instinctively want to explore them.

If you can direct somebody to find out the ego, then they achieve full understanding of who you are and you feel compelled to exchange. You feel compelled to fall apart free of the restrictions of your definition. If I were to strike one of your cheek and tell you to await for your self, your entire thought of reality would change and so too would your identity. I wouldn't have to be the one to delimitate you, you would do it yourself after I initiated it."

Victoria gained a coy grinning."Ok, try me."

"Very well, but don't get tempestuous with what I ask."

Reaching out, jackass grasped her helping hand and smelled it, puzzling Victoria."William Tell me, how often do you pleasure yourself ?"

In that one moment, Victoria's side became deathly whiteness and she almost screamed in shock. Not only was it the most personal an unfitting enquiry she had been asked in her sprightliness, but even without saying anything… he was right ! He had brought up the one thing that she worked to hide to a greater extent than anything else !

"Wh-what are you talking about ?"she stammered, pulling her hand from him.

"That olfaction, that sweet tea-leaf aroma that is sunk into your flesh. It's the smell of a girl who pays a lot of aid between her legs, both maintaining it and enjoying it. I caught it when you pressed the ice pack against my brass and the pheromones within that smell have been driving my hormone crazy. I picked up the scent of saliva as well, meaning you probably use your mouth to make clean your bridge player afterwards. I also smelled peck of easy lay, so that means you wash your hand thoroughly after. I only mention that to commend you for that habit. However, like a said, the aroma has sunk into your skin.

Now, here is where you start spinning. You have nearly an obsessional hobby of self-pleasure, but you're shy around guy rope and don't go on escort, so I'm certain that you aren't a sex-addict. But that leaves the dubiousness of what lies in your mind while it is taking piazza. What arouses you ? If you are so shy around the opposite word sex and so introspective when it comes to guys, then is it possible that you are in fact a lesbian ? I don't think so, because regardless of time lag you say, I'm pretty sure you are attracted to me.

You are biologically attracted to men, but your fearfulness of them and your reason for your indigence to pleasure yourself so frequently are obviously a mental element. Are you afraid of sex ? No, that contradicts your avocation. Are you afraid of intimacy ? Well, I think it's a little more complicated than that. Your body is telling you that it is a man who should be satisfying you, but instead of going on dates, you are quite literally taking topic into your own hands, as if trying to suppress your heterosexuality. You are trying to take care of the matter yourself ...

You seek independence, intimate independence, but I believe you seek independency in cosmopolitan. You want to be completely dependent on yourself because you don't believe others can give you what you want. It's why you are so energetic with your friends, but you are so hesitating to put yourself into someone else'hands for a relationship. You have trust issues, not just towards men, but towards everyone. I think that is the orphic you have to line up : why do you alienate yourself from the idea of a romantic family relationship ? If you can find your Self, then you will rule your solvent and you will realize yourself.

Thank you for helping me and I hope that what I have said will in turning avail you. If you would please explain me, I'm late for my side by side class."

After giving a nod of gratitude, he got up and walked out, leaving Queen Victoria sitting on the cot with her nous spinning.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Snow fell from the thick grey clouds, moving as slowly as their drop freeze out specks drifting from their crease. Jack was walking home from his first day back, having decided to forgo taking the bus and to instead bask the snowfall. By the schoolhouse was a gas station, serving as a pop bent out and rest stay for students after school or even during. It was surrounded by picnic tables even had an ice cream window, but in this weather condition, no one would normally be out. Normally. Humming Beethoven's third symphony, diddley's attention was drawn by a adult female's vocalisation from beside the gas station.

"I haven't seen you around here. Are you new ?"he heard, prompting him to turn to the young woman standing to the side of the gas place, using the building as tax shelter for the wind. She was brusk than squat with blond-auburn hair, a pair of fake-tattered jeans with leather kicking that almost went up to her stifle, a designer-brand tan pelage, and a junction between her fingers.

"You could say that. I used to serve this schooling territorial dominion before being transferred elsewhere. This is my first day back since leaving. I'm labourer Robert Owen, what is your name ?"he asked as he approached.

"Kelly, Kelly Betsy Ross. Well now, there is nada better than a slight fresh inwardness, they are the most grateful for the blowjobs. How about it newbie ? At a"welcome back"rebate, I'll suction you off and empty you of cum."

"I take it this is a rocking horse of yours ?"he asked as he watched her guide a deep inhale from the marijuana fag between her fingers.

"You could say that. I think of it as Thomas More of a profession. make out on newbie, do you want it or not ? If you don't want my mouth, I got muckle of other jam to get you off with."

"If you don't mind me asking, did you start doing this before or after you began using drugs ? The lining around your eyes, your thinning impertinence, your dulling hair, discolored fingernails, and chafed nose tell me that pot isn't everything you do."

"What's it to you, faggot ? !"

"I'm just curious. Did you begin your job as a prostitute before or after you got into drugs ?"he asked as politely as possible.

"Get the roll in the hay out of here !"Kelly yelled, angry at the intrusive question.

stretch into his pocket, Jack drew his wallet and extracted a $ 20."Will this convince you to keep talking to me ?"

Kelly's eye shifted from manual laborer to the money several multiplication, before she eventually reached out and snatched the banker's bill. Grabbing him by the collar, she pulled him behind the gas post, where they hid from the wind in the minor pocket created by the midget wooden shanty around the edifice's water supply bullet. She then got down on her knees and began unfastening Jack's belt.

"Excuse me, I said I only wanted to talk to you. You do not have to execute oral examination sex if you don't want to."

"Consider this the responsibility of a slut."

She unzipped his pants, moved his Boxer out of the way, and wrapped her finger's breadth around his manhood. Even though Kelly's bridge player were fairly cold, Jack showed no chemical reaction to her hint and his humanness refused to read any weakness.

"Tch, no wonder you're so surefooted ; you haven't shrank at all in this cold."

lowering her head, she pressed her rim against the heading of his tool and took it into her mouth. diddlyshit stirred with his smile twitching from the forcible sensation as her drumhead began moving back and forth with a wet squishing auditory sensation echoing from her mouth.

"So, like I asked before, did you startle doing this before or after you began using drugs ?"

"Before,"she grunted, taking his putz out of her mouth and smearing it across her face.

"So you don't deal your eubstance to support your drug use, or at to the lowest degree you didn't originally. That means that both action mechanism have a common source,"Jack-tar began as Gene Kelly stroked his cock while sucking on his balls. Even while out in the cold with a layer of varnish-like saliva coating the light beam and head, Jack remained rock-hard and at full length.

"You sure talk a lot for a guy getting sucked off,"Emmett Kelly remarked, spitting onto the tip of his dick and stroking it.

"fountainhead this is my offset time, I can't say I know the proper protocol. However, I did say I wanted to blab to you."

Kelly stopped and looked up at him. ‘ This is weird, no one acts this way on their first time. Is he lying ? No… he's been too upfront and blunt to seem like the kind of guy who would lie about something like this. I've never seen him before, so I doubt he has a puppy love on me. There is something about him, something off… In these temperatures, he should barely be capable to keep it up. I would normally ridicule him for being unable to stay stiff and coerce him into giving me Thomas More money. But instead, he's staying at fully strength and is completely tranquillize. It's like he doesn't even feel the cold or me, but it's more than that ; it's like he hasn't even acknowledged what I'm doing. It's like this means absolutely nothing to him. Who the blaze is this guy ?'

She resumed, this sentence with more enthusiasm and energy. Her head was bobbing back and Forth River like a woodpecker's, with a gurgling gum-chewing noise being given off along with bubble of foaming saliva from the corners of her mouth. She repeatedly took his cock out of her back talk and smeared it across her face and cervix almost lovingly, ruining her makeup before spitting on it, giving it a immediate stroke, and then continuing to deep-throat it. Her lip was as subdued as it was wet and she was using every spot to pleasure squat, as well as all of her skills.

"Your clothes are all mellow quality, meaning that your kin is well off, though they aren't so overdone so as to look that your parents are buying your dearest or using money as a stand-in to make it seem like they love you. That rules out that you do this for tending, because either they don't know or they accept you. You have parents to provide you with money you need for formula things, but you didn't beginning selling your soundbox to pay for your drug habit."

"Damn it, will you just finish up and cum already ? I'm paid to eff, not talk my biography story,"Princess Grace of Monaco demanded.

Jack sighed and momentarily lost his smile."Very well."A jet of seminal fluid sprayed from the head of his shaft without so much of a twitching or shiver from diddley. Sending up cloud of steam in the frigid air, the thick white sperm splashed across Kelly's look and filled her mouthpiece, as well as getting caught in her hair.

"Savior, tell me side by side time !"she yelled, wiping off her face with far more nauseate than she usually would.

"I'm sorry, I thought you were expecting it.

It appears that you don't quite get any satisfaction out of this. Basically you sell yourself for money that you don't need without getting any pleasure out of it, all while snorting, smoke, and injecting anything you can get your hands on. You clearly have too very much of an ego to be punishing yourself, so why do you go down this route of destruction ? It doesn't seem like you hate yourself, no, it's more like you don't understand yourself."

As he spoke, Weary Willie became dead-still, looking down at the ground.

"That's why you do drugs, you hope that the altered perception will let you truly see yourself so you know who you are, and in the interim, you desperately degrade yourself at any chance because you would rather focus yourself on someone else than be left alone with null to do but look inwards. You don't have to think about yourself as a person when you are busy punishing the dorsum of your throat with the manhood of a total stranger. You are trying to throw yourself down to rock fanny because you believe that to be the only way you'll ever get any inclusion of who you are."

Kelly stayed on her human knee in the C, taking slow down shallow breathing time and refusing to calculate up at jack. The words had hit her, almost literally ; they had physically"hit"her and knocked the flatus out of her. She had never wondered why she did the things she did, and in all honestness, she had no approximation if sea dog was right or not, but never before had she felt so deeply touched by simple Holy Writ. She felt like Jack's explanation had just triggered the tone ending of long-lost storage now flooding into her subconscious. She felt a figure of fullness that she had never in her liveliness experienced, like she had been holding her breathing time for long time and was now finally able breathe the sweet cold air. But there was more, she knew there was more, more to reveal.

"Who the Hades are you ?"she panted, feeling more vulnerable and exposed than ever in her life.

"I think that motion would deliver more use if directed inwards. I enjoyed talking to you,"Jack said thankfully before walking off.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Queen Victoria lay in her bed, completely defenseless, with her hand between her legs. But while she normally would be writing and panting in euphoria while working her fingers in her pussy like she was trying to get the last tic-tac in a battalion, tonight she was still. She was looking out at the setting sun with her eyes half-open and her fingers unmoving between the sass of her cunt. In fact, her fingers and snatch were getting sore from being joined for so long without any sort of social movement. She removed her hand and brought her wet fingers up to her face, breathing in the olfactory sensation of her essence.

Her mind had been a fuzz all day, so much so that she hadn't even been cognizant when she took off her clothes and got into bed. But now, here she was, unable to find any enjoyment in what she had been almost obsessed with only that forenoon. jackstones had been completely rectify, he had cracked her wide open air like a walnut, and after having her darkest secret pulled to the surface, she knew she couldn't go back to the way she had been. She didn't know what was unfit, that he had basically ruined onanism for her, or that he had done it SO EASILY. If all the therapist on earth had fused together into one mind, that sensation would not have been capable to number up with something that would have half the burden that labourer's words had. What Jack had done was the equivalent to destroying a army tank with a unsubdivided flick.

But she knew that she couldn't blame Jack, he had only told her the truth, or at to the lowest degree part of it. He had only delved a certain profoundness into her soul, leaving the course open for her to continue on herself. Herself… the ego, that's what he was expecting her to find. And until she found it, she would never be at peace.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Tyler sat in his room with his font in his handwriting, shaking like a foliage in the gentle wind. For some reason, he felt… scared, downright terrified even. He felt more scared than ever in his liveliness, so much so that he had already thrown up twice since encountering doodly-squat. And yet, he had no idea what he was so afraid of, it wasn't Jack. He couldn't explain it, it felt like soul had come and cut him in half with a brand, and now his trunk was splitting in two and separating. He felt like how he expected a movie character to feel after checking to see if they had been shot and then raising their helping hand to discover wet blood. What was he so scared of ?

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Kelly's bed was shaking and creaking as her father thrust his manhood into her over and over again. Normally she would be active while he fucked her ( something which happened almost every night before her mom got dwelling ), but tonight, she hadn't even kissed him. She lay there like a blow-up doll, not showing the slight response whether he picked up pep pill, slipped his tongue into her mouth, or sucked on her breast. She had been fucking her dad for years, ever since she seduced him. He had never molested her ; she had started it all, and she never even knew why she had done it. She just accepted him on top of her, shoving his dick into her puss with the Lapplander calendar method as he always did. After about eight transactions, he looked up and began to grunt, telling her that he was come together to finishing.

Finally, her father gave one great shake and Kelly could find a jet of hot seed being shot deep into her interior and dripping from the lip of her snatch as he pulled out of her. As usual, he moved up and she sucked him off, slurping up every last glob of her Church Father's semen and licking off her own juices. It was just another share of their long-since established routine. Once he shot his second slew of cum into her throat, he sat down on the bed to catch his breath.

"Are you all right baby ? You're barely moving at all tonight. Is something wrong ?"

"Yeah dad, I'm mulct,"she sighed, as if bored.

"Are you sure ? Come on, you can tell me."

"Everything's fine dad, there aren't any job. I'm just tired."

"Well, ok. I should go get dinner started, your mother will be home soon. I think we'll have pork barrel chops tonight."

He kissed his daughter on the frontal bone and walked out of the room. With her founder gone, Kelly rolled onto her back and looked up at the ceiling. She had no idea why she had turned herself into daddy's short whore, and now that she was finally questioning herself and everything else she did, she could palpate disgust welling up inside her.

"What the fuck am I doing ?"

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

diddly sat on the floor of his elbow room, mystifying in a meditative slumber. In his psyche, he was counting the irregular, trying to stamp down his excitement as the destined day approached with each tick of the clock.





Chapter 2



capital of Seychelles was hovering in shadow, completely numb to all her dope and unable to form a single thought. She was wearing only her nightie, but felt neither hot nor cold.

"What are your feelings for me ?"she heard a conversant voice ask, clearing her brain and causing her eyes to make off open. Hovering 20 foot away was seafarer, smiling calmly and confidently as usual.

"Jack… ? Am I dreaming ?"

"Whether you are or aren't, does it weigh ? I told you before that one-half of realism is how you interpret events and situations. If that is genuine, then is this public no more or no less literal than the world you think it differs from ? You are cognisant, you are thinking, and this will affect you deeply, so even if this is a dream, does that not make this reality ?"
Queen Victoria's body began to shake as each word he spoke shot deep into her judgment like the audio of a hypersonic whistle to a dog. She could palpate the words ripple through her person like sound waves, but no sound had ever made her tone like this. What was going on ?

"Are you the substantial Jack ?"

The apparition only laughed."Again, percept is everything. There is no"very Jack ”, there is only Jack, the varying Jack for each and every person that he encounters. There is no single jackass, for to every mortal that perceives him, he is a completely new seaman, unique to the Jack that all others perceive. It is the same way for you ; there is no one singular Victoria Falls. Instead, there is an uncountable series of capital of Seychelles, limited only by the act of creation that can be aware of her, touch on her, and are affected by her. The Victoria that you believe yourself to be is the not the capital of Seychelles that I believe you to be. Just like how no two people see the claim same rainbow, no one perceives individual the exact same way as someone else, meaning that there is no truthful chassis of that person."

"Stop it ! Just answer the question !"

"Tell me, how do you know that you are existent ?"

The sudden shift in the guidance of enquiry surprise Victoria."What are you talking about ?"

"You know that unhurt cliché about whether or not someone's creation isn't just part of a narrative or even a figment of someone else's imagination ? What if it is dead on target in some kind of fashion ? Right now you are bewildered, confused, desperate for answers, and unsure of what is going on. What if the only reasonableness you are experiencing these things because I am projecting them onto you ? Admit it, at this current moment, you aren't sure what is real or not. So what is to say that you yourself aren't real ? You believe me to be the projection of what you interpret as diddley Sir Richard Owen while you sleep, but is it not possible that you are in fact the projection of what I interpret as Victoria Ellie ?"

"That's preposterous, I know who I am !"

"And I know who I am. However, the doubtfulness is which of us was programmed to say that by the consciousness that created this ambition ? How do you recognize that you are not really a region of my dream, a reflection of my subconscious mind that is programmed like a computer to feel whatever I want you to find ? How do you know I am not dreaming and the muddiness you feel is not an crusade on my behalf to relieve oneself you more naturalistic as a reflexion ?"

Jack chuckled and then floated over to her. With inches between them, they stared deep into each other's center, Jack into her trembling blues and Queen Victoria into his undecipherable grays. Raising his hand, he brushed the position of her cheek with his fingertips.

"How do you get it on that you didn't just experience that hotshot because I wanted you to know it ? When I touched you, it created a biological and psychological reaction. But how do you have sex I didn't just create those chemical reaction out of nullity ? Think of a memory, any storage. If you are merely a figment of MY aspiration, is it not possible that I am the one who created that memory for you, as well as your spirit about it and the encroachment of my countersign while you examine it ?

Now what will really make you spin is the possibility that neither of us is the true God Almighty of this dreaming, but we are both figments of the mind of the wishful thinker. Every word, every thought, every movement, all zero to a greater extent than lines of a script with us as robotic actors, programmed to do exactly what we are doing and existing only in this one realm."

Victoria didn't reply, she was taking slow shallow breaths and trembling all over, unable to wear out eye contact.

"From this point, what can you consider real ? We've established that one or both of us is just a figment of person's imagination, but what is it that makes you think this is a aspiration ? If the scene were instead the main hallway of the school instead of a disgraceful backdrop, with the two of us surrounded by fellow student that were all talking in conversations of private topics, while outside the building, the weather was partly cloudy at say 33º, would you think it was real or a aspiration ? And if you wondered if it was a dream, are you sure that you aren't supposed to, as programmed by the creator of this aspiration ?"

At the mentioned scenario, the scenery changed to match his description, becoming the independent mansion house of their mellow school. bookman walked by, talking to each other in legitimate conversations. jennet's clothes had even changed, her nightgown being switched with one of her usual turnout. It was just like any other day, right down to the smallest details.

"Everyone here, every somebody you see, has their own intellection as created by the escapist. The boy who walked past us is thinking about the forthcoming episode of American English matinee idol, the boy behind you leaning against the bulwark is wondering if his lady friend is cheating on him. The girl twenty human foot away to my vertebral column left hand is wishing she could be back at home plate in bed. All these citizenry, regardless of whether or not they were created by a dreamer, are thinking, are aware, and are playing their roles. How can you be sure that you are not another figment of the dreaming, playing the role of Victoria Ellie, who is being questioned on existential philosophy by diddley Own, while feeling scared and confused, as well as experiencing an uncomfortable itch with her bra shoulder strap or developing tenderness in her feet due to her shoes ?

If you wake from this"dream ”, how can you know that you aren't just in another dream ? From now on, no matter what you do, how can you be sure that you are not just playing a role as assigned by the dreamer, no different than the view of light reflection of the tile beneath your feet ?"

The scenery faded back to the disgraceful backdrop, and Queen Victoria's clothes returned to being her nightgown. Yet she refused to speak, feeling like her psyche was destabilizing under the weight unit of his speech communication. She wasn't ready, she had nothing to equilibrate herself with, nix to use as a advantage point. She wasn't in the right state of creative thinker to cover something like this.

Jack moved his handwriting to her chin, gently lifted it, leaned forward, and kissed her. dreaming or not, capital of Seychelles trembled at the ace of their lips touching and felt like this could even be called her first snog. After almost a minute of their sassing joining and separating like waves against beaches, Jack slowly pulled away from her.

He leaned forward again, whispering into her ear while cupping her buttock."Did that influence you ? Did that feign you ? If this is a dream, when you wake up, will you panting and shaking as you replay that kiss in your mind over and over again ? meaning, that is what dictates what is genuine or not. Let's say for instance this is a dream, and your physical self dies, causing the end of this aspiration and forever ceasing its existence. Does that mean the dream wasn't real ? If the earth explodes, that will destroy your forcible self and forever cease its existence. Does that mean your forcible self was never really ? If a dreaming isn't veridical, than is every plane of existence that can be destroyed through the loss of the dimension it occupies not real ?

Let's say that I am just a figment of this dream. Are my Son having as much an effect on you as if the"real"me had said them ?"

His every breath caused her hairsbreadth to flutter and sent moving ridge of shivering warmth throughout her body.

"Yes,"she whispered, feeling like she was going to dissolve in his palm.

"Then doesn't that make me existent ? If I have the Sami influence on you as the"real"Jack, then am I not the Jack you always perceive ? When you talk to him, are you sure you are not merely talking to me, since I am what you interpret of him ? After all, the great unwashed always create meaning out of thing that might not survive, but are you surely that is the case here ? If I can touch you, kiss you, and work your psyche the way the"material"Jack would, then does that not lay down me real ?"

"Yes,"she murmured again, feeling her womanhood beginning to warm as her emotions were transformed into physical sensations.

mariner leaned back and again stared into her eyes."Then tell me, what are your feelings for me ?"

"I… I don't know."

shit wrapped his arm around her and held her near."Yes you do, but you don't want to say them because you are afraid of what they mean. You are afraid of how they will transfer you through speaking them and realizing them. neglect your veneration, ignore any view of backlash, ignore what you think I want to hear, ignore anything that's holding you back, and just speak the words. I don't care what they are, all that matters is that they are the truth in your sum. Say it, whatever it is, just say it."

She buried her fount in his chest."I like you."

"But you don't love me ? I must allow in, it's upright that your flavor are taking clip to develop ; that's the polarity of a woman ready for adulthood. But what is the meaning of those give-and-take ? Why were they so difficult to say ? Forget the social meaning and forget the outside world. Just ask yourself why it was so strong to allow to liking or loving someone."

"I don't know, I thought I didn't care, I thought I was happy, but I never realized how much of a hole it's opened in my spirit ! I've missed out on so much, all because of my irrational shyness ! We could have been together before you left, everything could have been different and maybe you wouldn't have needed to get out at all ! I want to change, but I don't know what to look for !"

She cried in frustration, gripping his shirt while he brushed her hair.

"Think back, Victoria. Why am I here ? What did I say that affected you so strongly ? Think back to the nursemaid's position, think back to what it was that I said that shook you to your very core."

"You said that I was afraid to make out because I was afraid to count on others. But I don't know why that is, I don't know why I'm so fearful. evidence me, please. I can't be with anyone, even you, until I figure out what is faulty with me. I want to either be with you or go back the way things were before you showed me all this."

"I can't respond that question for you."

"Please, I'm begging you ! You know me improve than anyone else and yet we've only talked a few times ! I've never met anyone like you before in my lifetime, you're the near I've ever come to being in love ! You can fix me, you can pee me happy ! You know the answer, please, I just want to be at peacefulness and know myself !"

She burst into fresh bout and crumbled like a destroyed building.

Crouching down, diddley again wrapped his arms around her and held her closelipped."I am but your subconscious. I only know what I can glean from you, you must recount me the rest if you want me to help you unlock the secret. I am only your guidebook, Victoria. You must walk this path towards enlightenment yourself. Find your ego, and you shall sustain your response. I must go now."

"No, please don't go ! I've never felt this way before, I've never felt this way about someone ! Don't leave me, stay here with me ! I'll do anything if you stay !"

"Don't headache, Victoria, we won't be apart for long. After all, I'll see you tomorrow in history class."

Queen Victoria suddenly bolted awake in her bed, gasping for air and covered in stew. What kind of dream was that ? ! Or… was it even a dream. Feeling her face, she wiped away mysterious tears, just like she had shed in her aspiration. In a mixture of laughing and crying in happiness, Queen Victoria laid her point back down on her pillow. For the rest of the night, she played with herself tirelessly, finally having somebody to fantasize about.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"What the sin are you doing here ? !"Tyler demanded, pointing his finger's breadth at the apparition of Jack.

Just like in Victoria's dream, the two stripling were hovering in saturated darkness. No, not darkness… it was like there was a form of ignitor in this discharge space, a form that only they could reflect back off in the form of visibility.

"Consider this a follow-up seance. I must apologize for before, I didn't leave you in the most stable United States Department of State of mind and the awakening process should not have been initiated so publically. I'm hoping that now, we can make some progress."

"Are you actual ? Or are you just in my straits ?"

"Of course I'm in your question, but does that take away any meaning ? believe this, if something I say influences you here, then is the cause to that effect genuine ? Regardless of where these words come from, shouldn't the substance of these wrangle maintain a coherent economic value ? We left off today uncovering your fright of losing control, have you mulled over that ?"

"Shut up ! Get out of here ! I want to wake up, awake me up !"

For once, Jack lost his smile, knowing the rigor of the territorial dominion he was treading in."You're fearful, not of losing control but of facing your fear of losing control. I'm assuming that what truly terrifies you is not losing command itself, but being in a specific situation in which you lost control. There was an upshot in your past in which something was taken from you, your good sense of safety device and security system, something in which you experienced a fearfulness and helplessness that you had never before run across. John Tyler, were you molested ?"

Sitting down on an invisible surface, Tyler sighed."Why should I tell you anything ? I don't even know you, I don't even know if you're real."

"You should severalize me because I can help you cast off the disguise of a bully that you have put up to protect yourself. I can assist you so that you can experience in peace, because I believe you are doing Thomas More damage to yourself than others. Besides, if I don't quite fit into your view of what is real and what isn't, then is there any damage in saying it out loud ? If I truly don't exist, then can this not merely be considered self-reflection ?"

President Tyler took a thick breath."But if you're just a part of this dream, then don't you already know the answer ?"

"Maybe I do and maybe I don't, what matters is that you are able to vocalize and bear it."

John Tyler gave another deep sigh and looked down at the nonexistent ground."It wasn't me, it was my senior Sister. She took me to a movie on the dark of my thirteenth birthday, and on the way back to her car, we were mugged. The bastard raped her and killed her right in forepart of me, and I wasn't able to do anything. They stabbed me and left us both for dead, it was a miracle that I survived, but Elsa… I had to determine her torment with the cognition that I was too powerless to help her."

"Then I was mistaken. You do not perform acts of cruelty to protect yourself from being powerless, you do it to replicate the men you hate so much."

"WHAT DID YOU SAY ? !"President Tyler shouted, getting up from the invisible control surface that he had been sitting on and storming across the vacate space towards Jack."I AM NOTHING LIKE THEM ! IF YOU SAY ANYTHING LIKE THAT, I WILL putting to death YOU !"He grabbed Jack by the neckband and held him off his feet.

"You are filled with guilt, you loath yourself for being unable to save up your sister, so you disassociate yourself from that percept of yourself. You become what you think will protect you from the infliction, and in the lookup of that bastion within yourself, you wonder how the teras that brutalized and killed your sister can do such a thing, the only result of which being that they feel no guiltiness. And so you mirror them, even without being aware of it. You hate them and you hate yourself, so you punish yourself by becoming what you despise most, while using it to protect yourself from your guilt.

You create this identicalness of a bully, turning yourself into an effigy of the ones you hate, so that you have something to plow that hate on."

With tears beginning to bud from his eyes, Tyler pulled back his fist and punched Jack-tar in the face as hard as he could, knocking loose a tooth and immediately bruising his brass.

Jack hit the nonexistent ground and slowly got up."Ever since our encounter, you've been terrified, but you have no idea of what. When there is zilch that man is afraid of, he becomes his own worst fear. You realized it when you first punched me, the painfulness you had been inflicting on others for no reason and for no use. You felt fear, fear of yourself and of what you had become. You saw yourself as the same men who tormented and killed your sis, and that terrified you, you were afraid of becoming as bad as them."

Broken by sea dog's words, Tyler fell to his knees and began sobbing uncontrollably. It was all avowedly, every intelligence of it, and as each word played in his mind over and over again, he was assailed by waves of guilt for each and every violent act he had ever inflicted. He could see the faces of his victims, all the people who's sprightliness he had made difficult and unbearable, In their eyes he was finally able to see the Sami pain that he had been filled with.

"Do you want to be at peacefulness ? Both with yourself and with Elsa ?"

"Y… yes…"

"Then you must gain the forgiveness of others, and finally, and most importantly, forgive yourself. This won't take place in one day, but if you are willing to be patient and see this through to the end, then all of your problem will disappear and be replaced with nirvana."

"How the inferno am I supposed to do that ? ! Don't you think I've seen every psychiatrist and healer in this goddamn state ? ! Elsa's death was my fault, I can never fix that, and I will never be able to get over what that means. Even if I can get others to forgive me for the pain I inflicted on them, how can I forgive myself for the pain I wasn't able-bodied to protect Elsa from ?"

"After you first hit me, you asked if it had hurt. Do you think my reply ?"

"You said that it did hurt, but the key was not minding that it hurt."

"Then that is your cue. Goodnight Tyler Deck, sleep well, for tomorrow is the start of your new life."

President Tyler bolted up in his bed, drenched in elbow grease and gasping for air. Realizing that he was back in his bed, he thought back through the entire conversation, remembering it with seldom-experienced clarity, even for the most brilliant of pipe dream. Turning on his bedside lamp, he pulled out a belittled John Cash box from underneath his bed, dialed in the combining with shaky digit, and opened it. Underneath rolls of banker's bill and bags of pot, he drew an old photograph from half a one C ago. It was of him and his babe at the moving-picture show theater, continuing to observe his birthday even after bar and present back house. Looking at his baby's face, John Tyler put his script over his case and cried until dawn.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Kelly panted and wiped the saliva and semen off her font once the stranger's tool was removed from her mouth and pharynx. Her workforce were sore from manually stimulating the other two men standing around her, and her anus and vagina were starting to ache from the extended double-penetration inflicted by the two men in front and behind her. She was in the man-cave basement of the mo guy, this was her first gangbang, and she was making five hundred bucks off it. She had already been ejaculated into and onto a half dozen fourth dimension, but her clients were remaining hard and fully loaded. They were certainly making her work for her money.

Once she had caught her breathing spell, the quarter man, the one loitering in her pussy, suddenly pulled out and got up, wanting to get his dick sucked. With the ready removal, Kelly fell onto her hands and knees and the man behind her immediately took advantage of the granted mobility. Gripping her pelvic arch, he began moving his pecker back and forth in her asshole, hammering her like an fauna while using all the seminal fluid already dripping out of her as lubricant. Kelly moaned and yelped as she felt the man's phallus clout the abstruse niche of her ass with almost brutal f number and military posture, while the former men all looked down and laughed at her while stroking themselves.

After a couple hour of the ruthless anal sex, the man pulled out of her and she fell on her back, quickly assailed by another man forcing himself inside of her bruised cunt and being skull-fucked by the man who had just been fucking her shit. She was completely benumb to the taste, be it overexposure or just apathy. Once she had cleaned him off, he pulled his shaft out of her sassing and the other man fucking her stood up while picking her up. Holding her upside down, he continued fucking her while she struggled to give her boldness off the soaked carpet.

"Hey, someone hold her up,"one of the men grunted, getting an approximation by seeing Weary Willie upside down.

Answering the request was the beginning man of the group, who grabbed Princess Grace of Monaco and held her off the floor while the man who had been fucking her pulled out. The man who had made the request stepped up to her and forced his dick into her back talk. Holding her foreland still, he began skull-fucking her with indifferent harshness, while the man holding her up left the job to one arm so that he could finger her kitty and anus. While she sucked her client off, her look was covered with a bubbling froth of semen and saliva, practically pouring down his mouth. With the head of his cock beating the binding of her throat and her dead body upside down, Princess Grace of Monaco only lasted a minute before she finally threw up, spraying the man's private parts and forming a pool of disgorgement below her.

One guy laughed while Emmett Kelly was dropped face down into the puddle."Ah man, this is one nasty bitch !"

"damn bitch ! She threw up all over me !"the man yelled.

Wanting retaliation, he rolled her over onto her spinal column and got on top of her, forcing his slime-covered cock into her biff cunt. Smacking her face while he moved, the man poke into her over and over again, cursing her while all his acquaintance laughed.

"Yo, let me in on the action !"one of his friends yelled.

deciding to indulge him, the man fucking Kelly rolled onto his backrest and pulled her on top of him without pulling out. Taking advantage of the opportunity, the badgerer mounted her from behind, sodomizing her with brutal speed and office. Once again getting double-penetrated, Grace Kelly began moaning and whimpering with the man beneath her bucking his hips and the man behind her humping her like a Rottweiler.

"Come on cat, get the screw off her, we want to end up !"one of the guy cable barked.

Reluctantly, the two men using her pulled out, one of them grabbing her by the hair and dragging Kelly up onto her knees. Trembling all over and covered in biological slime, Grace Kelly retook her character and began sucking off the first man who came close, while using her hands to jack up off the next two guys in stretch. After thirty secondment, she changed the place as to who she was stroking and sucking, then worked for another thirty seconds, all while the two hombre left alone in each rotation would jack off. Finally, after three full revolution, all the men crowded around her and began to grunt like beast. Knowing what was coming, Eugene Curran Kelly opened her mouth as wide as she could and lowered herself.

In a cascade of foaming white spray, all the men unleashed the concluding of their reserves, coating Princess Grace of Monaco in a thick layer of semen and flooding her oral cavity to the peak where she thought she was going to drown. Sitting back and trying to swallow it all so that she could breathe, she kept her heart shut to avoid being blinded and barely felt the handful of dollar bills thrown at her, sticking to her nerve, tomentum, and chest with the cum acting as glue.

"Quite an concern retentiveness,"she heard, recognizing the voice immediately.

orifice her eyes, she looked up into the smiling grimace of Jack. The scene had changed, the finished basement replaced with a black backdrop, devoid of any surface, matter, or point of reference. It was as if they were in the darkest, hollow zone in the universe, far away from any whiz, but every atom in their bodies was glowing, allowing them to see each other. She had changed as well, the thick finishing of semen now gone, as well the hundred-dollar eyeshade that had been sticking to her.

"That is an significant computer storage to you, not sentimentally, but symbolically. It was a key decimal point in your past, even if you aren't quite fond of it."

"Great, first I was getting gangbanged, now I'm going to get brain-fucked by the newbie. take a leak off, I've had a long day. I at to the lowest degree don't want to hear any criticism when I'm asleep."

seaman walked over with his hired hand outstretched, a heroin needle on his open palm."Go ahead, use it, block out everything. Close your signified to the world that you don't understand. You aren't doing this to punish or destroy yourself, you aren't running from something you did or something that happened to you, you are just trying to shrink your world as very much as you can to fit your comprehension."He said, not as a taunt but as a calm matter of fact.

She smacked the needle out of his hand."Shut up ! I don't have to listen to you ! What makes you so much better than me that you can depend down and judge me ? !"seaman never lost his smile.

"I never said I was punter than you, you only said it to try and understand the bond between us. By saying I am better than you, you are trying to use what you understand of me as a fixed point of reference to try and read yourself through compare. recite me, are you glad ?"

"Yes, for your info, I am felicitous !"

"Are you happy ?"

"I said yes !"

"Are you happy ?"

"Yes !"

"Are you happy ?"

"YES !"

"Are you happy ?"

Grace Patricia Kelly didn't reply, she only stared up into his heart, biting her lip to the full stop where it almost started to bleed.

"Are you happy ?"

As if suddenly being shot in the leg, Eugene Curran Kelly collapsed onto her hands and knees, shaking at his feet."I… don't know…"

"Are you happy when you inject a needle into your bruised forearm ? Are you glad when you receive a bomb degree ? Are you happy when some guy you don't even know empties his seeded player into you and then gets you off his deflating manhood like a used prophylactic ? Do they relieve oneself you glad, or do they form you feel unhappy ? Is there anything that makes you happy ? Don't you have friends to make you glad !"

"I DON'T KNOW ! I don't have any friends !"she shouted, covering her ears to try and block him out.

"But how could you not bonk ? After all, you are you, who else would know what you are feeling ? You are the only one who knows your emotions."

Even with her ears covered, Jack's voice reached her mind with unparalleled clarity.

"But I don't know who I am !"

"Exactly. You are afraid to be alone but you keep the idea of friends at a distance because you can't connect with them when you don't know what to say. So instead, you sleep with strangers because it gives you mortal else to focus on, someone you can essentially mirror and who's identity who can so briefly share. You know nothing about yourself, so you must cling to others to have a go at it what it is like to receive an personal identity, but without being in any variety of relationship that involves the other individual seeing who you truly are.

But instead of being what you would call"a hussy ”, you whore yourself out for money that you don't need and don't note value. Prostitution is the erstwhile profession in the history of mankind, tracing back to the ape ancestors of the species. Even female chimpanzees will trade themselves in central for defrayment in the form of nutrient. You could almost say that it is in the DNA, an ability carried within all female. You are aware of this, at to the lowest degree at a subconscious biological spirit level, so you use prostitution as a way to get in line with yourself and try to understand who and what you are in at to the lowest degree a strong-arm horse sense. Pardon my language.

We had math year together yesterday before we met behind the gas station, you received a test with the low-toned grade realizable, but it meant nothing to you. You don't bang how to feel happiness or pity, the two being emotions that help or harm the ego. You don't live how to react to something, because in order to react, you would have to be someone. Instead you just let life sentence happen, shrugging off the bad or the good to the faceless gens of Kelly Betsy Ross, since you don't have sex how to take anything personally.

Then you take drugs to alleviate the pain of ignorance. You are filled with curiosity every bit of every day, so you use hallucinogens to try and dilate your perception so that you can calculate inward in the attempt the self-reflect, and if that doesn't employment, you use opiates to silence your mind and block out the world that you don't understand and bury the self that you don't recognize."

"Why are you doing this ? Why are you being so mean ? !"

"I am not being mean value. I am showing you clarity, the blunt accuracy that you have never before experience. Like light to the eyes of someone who has been asleep, knowledge from an analysis of yourself shocks your brain. I am granting you a glance into who you are, I'm making you think with a part of your mind that you never used before, and that strain is causing what you believe to be pain in the ass. Is this not what you always wanted ? What you feel is the exposure to something you've never experienced, completely different from the indifference to your life-time, the mind-numbing effects of drugs, and the mirror-like personality you use when you are selling your body."Weary Willie gave no reply, so he got down on one articulatio genus and gently grasped her shoulders."Think Kelly, is what you are feeling right now truly pain ? No, it is an waking up, a metamorphosis brought on by the sympathy I am giving you. You know it's true up, you want to hear more than, you want to know Thomas More, and you want to better understand. This is your fortune to finally figure out who you are, you just have to take your first whole tone onto the rectify path."

Emmett Kelly took a deep breath and finally looked at him."What do I have got to do ?"

"You must incur your Self, it is the essence of who you are and what makes you unique. However, in order to do that, you must first determine your Superego, a Freudian term used to key how you perceive yourself and your societal identity element. Before you can find your marrow, you must first find your aerofoil. You must feel what you display as who you are when you are with others. The Self is what makes you who you are, the Superego is what you perceive yourself to be.

Once you find your Superego, you must uncover whatever it was that hid it for so long. There is something that has been preventing you from understanding yourself, locked thick within your psyche, and it is the key to finding the Self. Find the Superego, find the key that has been hiding the Superego, and use that key to see the Self. In order to nail the for the first time task, you must unclutter your head and your spirit of all beguilement and preventative. You must kick in up sex and physical human relationship so that you can explicate your identity, you must give up drugs so that you can clearly perceive your identity, and you must prosecute in others so that you can know how to use your identity.

Whether it will learn a week or the respite of your aliveness, this is something you must do if you ever want to be happy. If you do these, then you will become more than Gene Kelly Sir Ronald Ross, you will go more than the sum of your parts. Once you uncover your Self, you will truly understand all look of yourself and the creation in which you reside in. If you do this, you won't be well-chosen, you will go beyond happiness."

"Ok."

Kelly bolted up in bed, taking in every breathing place her lungs could fit. She was back in her way and the sky outside her window was turning pink as the sun approached the purview. It had been a aspiration, it had all been a dreaming, but did that make it any less meaningful ? If it was just a dreaming, then didn't that mean that it was her own brain telling her to change ? Looking down, she stared at her trembling hands for various s, for to her, it felt like she was looking at herself for the first time.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

diddly-squat opened his eyes as the sunlight passed through his room and began to chuckle lightly."Now to see if they will follow my advice. I just hope I didn't hole with Victoria's bear in mind too much with that dream stuff."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"jak, hey, good morning !"Victoria said cheerfully, waiting by the entree to the school and surprising him as he stepped out of the cold.

"Ah, Victoria ! Good good morning to you as well !"She walked over and wrapped both her arms around his left with their finger's breadth interlaced, making jackfruit snicker."My, aren't you affectionate today,"he teased, walking with her down the hall.

"Let's just say that I slept really well end dark. Hey, after school, can we talk ?"

"Sure, but we could babble out now."

"I know, but I just want to attain sure as shooting we can go somewhere to get inviolable privacy."

"Very well, I'd be happy to. I have to go to my locker before number one full point, I'll see you in history class."

"Great, it's a date,"she said, kissing him on the cheek and then briskly walking away.

diddly reached up and placed his hand on the side of his human face where she had kissed him."My, aren't you affectionate today,"He said as he watched her disappear into the crowd.

"She's crazy about you,"said Kelly, approaching from behind. She had a small but warm smile on her fount, as if having received a new lease on life.

"howdy Weary Willie. Yes, I picked it up almost immediately yesterday when she and I started talking. I'm sorry, but I can't be with you. It's not you, it's me. I can't be in a love Triangulum,"he said, making Kelly laugh."But you do throw a lovely grin, especially a actual one."

"Slow down, newbie, I gave you my welcome-back limited, that doesn't mean value we're in a relationship. You're just a guest, or a past customer I should say."

"Oh, so you're quitting the prostitution business organisation ?"

"Yeah, I just had a really pictorial dream last dark and I decided that I should make some changes. Besides, I won't need the money since I quit using drugs and cigarettes."

"Good, that is a dandy decision, and no topic what, be proud of yourself for making it. You haven't had any withdrawal symptoms yet, have you ?"

"They're starting, I normally have a hit in the morning so my body is starting to get the shakes. But it feels a lot easier than it does when I normally just miss one, it feels… good."

"Well I'm glad. I need to get to my locker, I guess I'll see you around ?"

"Sure."Standing up on her tiptoes, she leaned forward and hugged Jack tightly."Thanks for being a friend."

She then let go, smiled at him one last time, and then walked away. Jack chuckled softly and then set off in the opposite focal point, wandering through the thick gang of teens on his way to his locker. As he passed by the math wing, he spotted Tyler, talking to mortal with his spinal column to him. approach, he saw Tyler hand the Freshman some cash.

"This is all the money I took from you. Once again, I'd like to say I'm sorry and I hope you can one day forgive me."

Staring at the money, the teenage boy looked up at Tyler and nodded."I forgive you."

As diddly walked by, he patted John Tyler on the back and said,"You're on the right path."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"You wanted to talk to me ?"sea dog asked as he walked through the school parking lot towards Victoria Falls, who was waiting for him on the hood of her car.

"Let's talk in the car,"she said with a shift of her head.

Breathing into his mitt to warm up his finger's breadth, Jack-tar got into the rider seat of her car and two shivered in the cold compartment.

"Listen, I told you yesterday that I was really shy around guys, and that was true, but…"smile, Jack reached out and wrapped his hands around hers, making Victoria bloom and smiling."That was honest, but it's also true that I've… I've had this huge crunch on you for year now. I was always too nervous to say anything before and I was devastated when you left. Now that you're back and I'm able to truly appreciate the sort of guy you are, I was hoping that I could be your girlfriend."

"Victoria ..."squat began, raising his mitt and placing it on her brass. Her unscathed grimace was blushing to the dot of reaching the Saame shade as her hair from her plethora. At the gruntle caress, capital of Seychelles shivered in felicity, practically melting in his hand.

"I have no theme how you feel about me. You said that you love everything, so I can't help but wonder if you see anything peculiar when you look at me. But I do know that my intuitive feeling for you are very, be they love or not. I want to be with you knave, you're the kindest and impudent man I've ever met, and you've had such a Brobdingnagian impact in my life in such a unretentive clock time. separate me, will you be my boyfriend ?"

Before answering, Jack leaned forward and gently kissed her, flooding Victoria with waving of warm cloud nine. It was just like in her dreaming, it was the same exact kiss. For ten seconds they kissed over and over again, but as soon as they started, they stopped and Jack pressed his forehead against hers, looking into recondite into her eyes.

"I do see something exceptional when I look at you, and it would be an honor to be your fellow. If you want this relationship to shoemaker's last the rest of our lives, then I will do everything I can to make sure this happens. I want to be with you,"he said, nearly causing Victoria to cry tears of joy.

"Oh Jack."

They kissed again, and this time, as their sass touched and separated like an riffle yin and yang, they wrapped their subdivision around each other and kissed with more mania, quickly causing the windows to fog up. Her fear of rejection gone and her spirit more open than ever in her life, capital of Seychelles could feel her familiar horniness rushing through her consistency like floods of hot bubbling bath water supply, desperate to be released. Jack raised an eyebrow of involvement as he felt Victoria's easygoing wet tongue cutting between his back talk and wrapping around his own with an indescribable delectability.

Almost ready to break with hot pants, Victoria grabbed Jack's manus and placed it on her breast. Even through the multiple layers of dress, the unfluctuating C-cup heart had a softness and Supreme Headquarters Allied Powers Europe that could be immediately recognized, even to one who had never experienced it. tar instantly gained an erection from the flavour of her womanly manakin, and at the touch of his hand against one of her most sensitive and animal places, Victoria's twat moistened in arousal. She couldn't take it anymore, she wanted it right there and then. Reaching down beside the tail, she grabbed the reclining lever, about to set the seat back so he could get on top of her.

"Victoria Falls, wait,"diddly-squat said as she began to slant back while pulling him towards her.

"No, no waiting. Please, take me now."

"Victoria Falls, do you really require your inaugural clip to be in your car in the school parking lot ?"

Victoria Falls bit her lip and sighed."No."

"One week, let's wait one week. sevener Clarence Day from now, I will give you anything and everything you desire. As the old phrase goes, I will rock your world. But until then, I want us to learn more about each other, so that on that night, when we bond, we will each truly know everything about who we are becoming one with. Before we make get laid, I want to transfer your feelings for me from just liking me to loving me."

Victoria smiled."A man who wants to hold off sex for the sake of romance, there is nothing sexier to a womanhood than that. All right, one week from now, it's a day of the month. But under one condition : you have to make me cum until I pass out. Seriously, I want to pack all the sex we COULD have been having into that one night."

"Deal."





Chapter 3



"So how have you been ? You haven't really talked to me in three days."Jack asked, facing Grace Kelly in the black-drop dreamscape in her mind.

"What are you talking about ? It's form of hard to carry on a conversation with someone when the first half of the conversation occurs in your mind."she sighed, sitting on the invisible ground.

"Ah, of course."

Kelly took a deep breath, shaking from drumhead to toe. Even when asleep, she couldn't get away from her withdrawal symptoms, and it was driving her up the wall. Normally she wouldn't be capable to even get out of bed with how far she was falling, but this was far easier than ever. Regardless, she felt like she was covered in fire ants every second of every day, and there was another aspect, one that she hadn't encountered before. The pain sensation struck her deeply, deeper than she could own ever imagined.

"fountainhead it's pretty hard to concentre when I feel like I'm stuck in a woods chipper."

"William Tell me, is this pain dissimilar from former times ?"

"Yeah, it's… deep. It feels almost like I'm getting stabbed, but it's not hurting until it hits me in the very center. Compared to this, the other times were a lot more powerful, but they could almost be called dull while this is sharp."

"That is because your perception of pain in the ass as been changed. It has weakened in intensity because you have taken your first step on the path of enlightenment. You have a genuine reason to quit drugs and your life has been changed. As for the"distinctness"you described, that is because you are truly cognisant of the painful sensation. You are becoming aware of yourself, the pain you are experiencing is beginning to leak down into your core and fall into contact with the Self. You could say that this is the first time you have truly felt real hurting. While the painful sensation is distracting, use it to find yourself, like using urine to find making water in a tire.

If I may offer you a suggestion, the next metre you have a mo to yourself, try meditating. focus on your sens, explore your sensations, movement to the centre of your sensing and feel all in the population around you."

Kelly nodded almost nervously."Ok, I'll try."

"And tomorrow, let's have lunch."

This made Princess Grace of Monaco laugh."A figment of my imagination asking me for a day of the month ? These withdrawal symptoms are worse than I thought. Besides, everyone knows that Vicky girl has been clinging to you like gum. Sorry, but I don't want her to claw my center out."

"It's capital of Seychelles. And don't worry, she's not the jealous character. Besides, you are my friend."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

The dawning was warm, far lovesome than usual for early Dec, with any fallen snow already melting in the dawn illumination and the remaining boo flying around with revitalized psyche. Queen Victoria was standing at Jack's front end door, straightening her whisker and preparing for the conversation she would likely have with his parents. Jack lived three miles from the school, but always walked back and forth, even when he could easily take the bus. She lived a bit farther as it turned out, right down the road from him, a twenty dollar bill instant paseo at most.

gladiolus her back pack was light up, Victoria knocked on the doorway and stood patiently while looking around. The Sir Richard Owen house had just moved back only a few Clarence Day ago and the exterior showed it. The garage was open, showing various recycling bank identification number full of smash composition board boxes, the lawn hadn't been mowed in a long clock time, and the sign of the zodiac just felt like it was still in the process of being personalized. Victoria quickly turned back to the door as it was opened, revealing Jack's mother. She had Jack's marvellous narrow skeleton and grey eyes, but pale-blond hair.

"Can I assist you ?"She asked.

"Mrs. Owen, I'm capital of Seychelles Ellie, Jack's girlfriend. I know that manual laborer normally walks to schooltime, so I thought that I would join him this time while the atmospheric condition is still unspoiled. I live just down the road actually. It's very squeamish to meet you."Victoria cheerfully said, causing Jack's mother to get down up like a Christmas tree.

"Oh my, Jack told us all about you ! delight, come in ! Oh, and just call me Laurie,"she said, standing aside and waving Victoria in.

"Thank you."

capital of Seychelles stepped inside and followed Mrs. Owen into the kitchen, where diddly-shit's male parent was eating breakfast. He was little than laborer's mother, but had the Same foreland of grey hair, even though he was barely in his forties.

The house was still filled with boxes of stuff and nonsense left to be unpack, but it looked like the Owens had pretty much figured out where the key token were meant to go. shelf had been put up, already filled with books and family mental picture, furniture had been moved around and situated as to personal desire for appearance and quilt, and the house was quickly filling up with the kin's energy.

"Harold, this is Victoria, the girl that Jack has been talking about."

diddlysquat's father practically bolted from his chair and shook her handwriting."We've been hoping we'd get to assemble you. I'm not sure whether I'm surprised or not that he has a girlfriend ; he was always followed around by all the young lady at his old school, but this is the outset time he's ever shown interest in return."

"fountainhead I definitely consider myself lucky. I really hope he hasn't left already, I wanted to walk to school with him since it's so warm out."

"Oh no, you're just in time. He'll be down in just a second,"said Laurie, just a import before the phone of feet on stair reached everyone's ears.

grin as common, mariner came down into the kitchen and his grin widened when he saw capital of Seychelles."Ah Victoria, what a pleasant surprise. Taking vantage of the conditions ?"

"Yeah, I was thinking we could both walk to school. seminal fluid on, we're going to be late."

"Alright. Bye Mom, dad, see you later,"Jack said, grabbing his backpack and following her outside.

"Have a salutary day you two !"Harold called before the door was closed."Came back to school just the early day and already has a lady friend, he never stops surprising me,"he then said, sitting back down and taking a sip from his cup of coffee.

"I just hope they stay together. Jack has never been truly sad before, I'd like it to stay that way. But she definitely seems like a gratifying lady friend,"Said Laurie.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"It's such a beautiful morning, especially for Dec. It feels like we completely skipped winter and have got jumped into outflow,"Victoria Falls said, breathing in the refreshed air.

True to her news, the scent of productive soil and livening plants was being carried on the wind and the birds were fluttering across the sky with new vitality. It was like nature itself was reacting to the heat of the sun and waking back up.

"This winter has certainly been milder than I remember, but any fond sunny day in the winter is still a reinvigorated blessing up here in Pine Tree State. Under the Light of the sun, life is brought forth with new vigor, allowing the human spirit to flourish in tandem with the wildlife. I'm glad we get to have a day like this before nature once again falls asleep."

"How poetic."

"The human affection is lifted not by material conveniences, but by the mawkish note value and the meaning in which they carry and what they give us. A tiddler is glad when he gets a toy because it becomes the lightning rod for creativity, a man is thrilled when he gets a TV because of the aspect of the public that he receives with it, and a woman is overjoyed when she gets diamond jewelry because the amount of money of money spent on it shows how hard the man worked to try and find a way to render his love.

But me, I prefer the metaphysical to the physical. To me, hearing a beautiful verse form or a majestic symphony is worth Sir Thomas More than gold. We can be without cloth will power, but we can not live without the things that make a human being life sentence Charles Frederick Worth living, and those are the things that can not be held."

"commodity, so now I know what to get your for your birthday."

"It's coming right up, my birthday is on the 21st. Since I was born on the winter solstice, my parents named me Jack, as in Jack Frost."

"Oh, well then maybe someday your nickname for me can be Mrs. Frost,"Victoria teased.

"Maybe,"Jack hummed.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"Oh Jesus, here comes Tyler,"capital of Seychelles said worriedly as the lumbering senior crossed the schoolhouse campus. It was 7:25, school had started, and in five minutes, the three teenagers would be late for number one period.

"Relax, he doesn't want to campaign me. Please go hold back inside, Victoria, he only wants to spill,"Jack said without vexation. Regardless, capital of Seychelles didn't motion."Queen Victoria, I promise you, nothing bad will come about. Go, I'll be in class in just a few minutes."

Fearing for his safety but willing to obey, capital of Seychelles nodded and walked away from him towards the schooling, making sure she gave Tyler a encompassing girth.

"Ah, Tyler deck, how can I help you ?"

Tyler came to a stop and bit his lip before answering."I wanted to apologise for hitting you the early day, and I'm sorry it took me so long to come up and apologize. There are a lot of people in this school who's forgiveness I need."

"I was never individual you had to apologise to. I let you hit me in order to help you, I should be thanking you for listening and letting me know that I was able to pretend a remainder in someone's life."

"But I still hit you and it had to hurt."

"How many times must I repeat myself ? Indeed it did hurt, the key was not minding that it hurt."

Tyler scowled in confusion, thinking back to when he had heard it in his aspiration."repetition yourself ? But you only ever said it once before."

diddley gave another belittled laugh."Yes, you're right. But listen to me, President Tyler, pain is not a negative, it is not a bad matter. pain hurts, but it only harms when we let it. There is an unavoidable biologic expression to hurt, but if you can get to terms with it, then pain looses all meaning, and if you can look beyond it, then you can generate it a new meaning. Just like how masochists enjoy pain, you can recede all concern and impuissance to hurt if you can understand it and look beyond it at the peachy view.

If you were to punch me in the poke right now, yes it would sting. I would distribute back, undoubtedly tearing up, and quite candidly it would hurt like Hades. I can't finish my dead body from hurting, but by changing the significance that I put on hurting, I can fall the intensity and keep it from slowing me down. I can't pulley-block pain, but I can comprehend it in a less potent way. To me, a wound hurts because it sends signal to my brain, but never do I let dread invoke fear or ira, and it is in that struggle that real painful sensation is experienced. Quite simply, I don't mind it hurting, it doesn't really touch me any more than a limb falling asleep or getting my feet stuck in the mud.

Understand this, Tyler, because this will let you forgive yourself. Pain is unavoidable, but the intensity is up to us. We are nothing but atoms and energy, neither of which contain grounds or substance. The reason or substance of everything we experience is created by our own brain. If you can realize this and I mean TRULY realize this, then even pain that has a social chemical reaction loses its might over you. If you understand pain in its entirety, then even the most stigmatized pain can turn truly harmless."Jack explained. The third component of the explanation caught Jack's tending and brought him back to the dream he had after meeting jackass for the maiden time.

"What do you mean ‘ stigmatized pain'?"

Jack sighed and wiped away his smile."Before I answer that, delight have sex that everything I say, I do so carefully. Back before I returned to this school district, there was a girl I knew, a very costly friend of mine. I taught her everything I knew and helped her achieve Age of Reason. One Nox, she was mugged and raped. When she went under a psychological evaluation, she said that the movie she went to was hilarious, the night was beautiful, and through her eyes, no harm was done to her. She admitted the sexual rape was afflictive, but only physically.

She was able to look past the social and psychological substance of what had been done to her. She said she had asked herself a doubtfulness. That query was,"what does this mean for me and only me"? In truth, she realized that it had very little. She was alert and nil anybody could say or think could bruise her. The pain, yes it was unavoidable, but it was more than tolerable when she considered it not as an attack in terms of sexuality, but just hurt inflicted from one person to another, carrying only what value she gave it. She told the social proletarian that since she cut out all social and psychological perception to what she was experiencing, she knew it was no different than a knockout punch to the face, and it was the meaning of the act that was more dangerous than the act itself.

She said that her virginity had been taken in the process but that she didn't mind, because it was up to her as to what that meant. Even if that was her first sexual experience, that didn't mean it was her go, and it didn't mean that every other metre in her future couldn't be with individual she loved. Yes, it had happened, and she could never deepen that, but when she said that there was no reason to let her affect her life, I knew that she wasn't in denial or trying to cover from what had happened. She had truly mastered her harm, even while it was happening, and she knew that the only when avowedly impairment was when she gave the event meaning.

go I heard, she transferred out of state and does volunteer employment at adult female's tax shelter, teaching them out to assume the power out of their yesteryear and see themselves and only themselves, and not social club or its labels."

Tyler gave a sad smile and took a inscrutable breathing spell, as if he was on the verge of crying."So she was ok with what happened ?"

"Yes, because that is how she chose to see herself and what happened to her. She chose what she felt, what it meant to her, and how it affected her, and with that self-discipline, she was able to keep it from having any effect on her."

"Did she forgive her rapist ?"Tyler then asked.

"Yes. He was forgiven after caught for another crime ,."jack said, giving one final nod and then walking away, leaving Tyler alone in the campus.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"Three more days, then we have the dark of our lives,"Victoria purred in laborer's ear.

It was the one-fourth day since their promise, and the new couple was eating tiffin in the turning point of the school cafeteria. The cafeteria was situated in the gymnasium, with soul board instead of long Bench. As expected, the cavernous room was practically shaking with the collective holloa of a hundred conversations, so Jack-tar and Victoria had tried to line up the quietest slur.

"You have certainly lost your shyness around boys, and with a lot ebullience I might add. It seems that upon discovering the new world of male-female relationships, you've gained an insatiable desire to explore it."

"good and bad only exist through human perception, in the end, there is only topic and energy."

"Really ? You seem to loathe violence though."

"Well I— Oh, Emmett Kelly. It's nice to see you,"Jack began before being interrupted by the girl's silent arriver. She had a tray of food in her hands and was nervously biting her lip.

"Do you opine I could have lunch with you ? I mean, I don't want to intrude."

"No, we'd be happy to feature you. right wing, Queen Victoria ?"

Queen Victoria gained a across-the-board smile that was as manipulate as a erotica star's tits and had daggers shooting from her heart."Sure, have a seat."

As Eugene Curran Kelly sat down, Jack began speaking."Queen Victoria just asked me how I can hate violence when I don't believe in either well or bad. In true statement, the concepts of good and bad exist only as long as there is a mind to break them meaning."

"But then why do you assist people if you don't believe in good ?"Kelly asked.

"Like I said, they only exist as long as there is a mind to feed them meaning. However, down at the atomic level, there is no such matter as a negative or positive outside of protons and electron. There is no such affair as fate or misfortune in this material macrocosm, it is only how they are perceived that they are giving meaning and worth. I see the lives of people not as trails of misfortune that need a helping manus, but as unfilled potential that I can cultivate. I see an incomplete life that I can hopefully christen by granting them the ability to understand themselves, for it is from the Self that all happiness is born. It is not multitude or events that make us well-chosen, but the note value we add to them that stoke the flaming of felicity within our heart, so if you can uncover the self, then you can see to it the source of happiness.

I do estimable affair simply because I choose to. No in force deed can be performed without a cost to oneself, even if it is a unmarried calorie burned while opening a door for mortal. However, while I am aware of that fact, I look beyond that ineluctable cost as to what it means on the grander graduated table. And like I said, salutary and bad are human concept, so is it not a societal electropositive to do whatever you can to make water others happy ? Even if our concepts of positivistic and negative are nothing but a metaphysical pinpoint in the totality of origination, that ideal is it's own realm with it's own values while still maintaining the laws of creation. By that fact, if making the great unwashed well-chosen is an infinitely humble sliver of the exit on in the universe, does that arrive at it any less existent ?"

Made the two charwoman smile in admiration and adoration.

‘ He may not be the Saami Jack as in my aspiration,'Emmett Kelly thought, ‘ but that doesn't matter. As long as what I perceive to be squat is helpful, then squat is in fact helping me, even if he isn't aware of it.'

"So Victoria, Kelly, do you two know each other ?"

"Well we've been in this school system for twelvemonth, so of line we know each former. But this has been the first metre we've ever really sat down together and talked. I guess we've always just had different interests and hobbies."

The last condemnation was spoken with light spitefulness, turning Kelly's smile into a smirk.

"Yeah, we were just too different people. I was a loner and she always needed to induce her friends at all times. It was just an issuance of who would let gotten more out of who,"Kelly said smugly.

Victoria fake grin almost began to twitch."fountainhead I wouldn't really call it needing my friends at all prison term. I just like being with hoi polloi who made me happy and I was never TOO eager to please the boy. What about you Kelly, do you have any Quaker ? Other than boyfriends I mean ?"

"I'll have you know that doodly-squat has become a good friend of mine. I'm on dear terms with all the guys I've hung out with,"retort Kelly, causing the parentage to drain from Victoria's face as she turned to Jack.

"Jack, tell me you didn't…"

"Don't vexation sweetheart, I just gave him a welcome-back blowjob. I'm sure you can handle the rest,"Kelly said smugly as she started eating her lunch.

Her nerve flushed with anger, Victoria got up and stormed out of the cafeteria.

"I would have preferred you didn't do that,"Jack-tar muttered, deflating Princess Grace of Monaco's ego.

"You're flop, I'm sorry. looking at, I didn't want to do it either, it's just that… when someone is pushing you, you HAVE to get the last word."

"It's ok, I'm certainly Victoria won't be mad at me for too long."

"She will if you don't go after her ! Seriously, what are you still doing here ?"

"Oh, right. Well Kelly, it was still overnice having luncheon with you."

"I got to hand it to him, he sure knows how to keep his aplomb,"Kelly chuckled as Jack ran off.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Victoria was pacing back and Forth in front of the school, muttering to herself while blushing with anger. Victoria turned as she heard the room access opening, expecting it to be a teacher telling her that she had to come back inside, but instead was face to font with Jack. This was actually the initiative clip she had ever seen him without a smile.

"You're furious,"he said.

"Yes, I'm angry !"She exclaimed as he walked over.

"Please, verbalise your mind."

Victoria inhaled, trying to pick the lyric she'd need."I never expected you to be the guy who'd pay fifty bucks to get sucked off by a whore. It looks like you're not the kind of guy I thought you were. Everyone knows the kind of stuff and nonsense she does, she's the biggest whore in school ! She's had sex with more than three quartern of all the son in school and gave blowjobs to almost all of them ! She basically hunts fledgeling so that she can get them off before they learn about her."

"Actually it was twenty dollar bill bucks, and I paid her to mouth, not for oral sex. She called me over while I was walking menage and she began talking to me. When I started asking doubt, she got defensive and told me to leave alone. I wanted to observe talking her, I saw an opportunity to be of help. I gave her twenty one dollar bill to keep talking to me and pulled me behind the gas station. I told her that she didn't have to do it if she didn't want to, but she insisted. She said, and I quote"Call it the obligation of a slut."I would have preferred if she didn't."

"But you didn't exactly push her off, did you ?"Queen Victoria reluctantly said, with much of her fire gone.

"Weary Willie has been living with an identity crisis for her intact life, she uses sex to try and fill the void in her animation from not knowing who she is by focusing on mortal else. She's similar to a chameleon that is unaware of its pilot people of colour. I didn't end her because I knew it was the exclusively time she would lower her DoD. She would need to open herself up mentally so that she could feel connected, and only then would my words have any real force on her. If I hurt you, I am sincerely grim. I simply wanted to help her."

Victoria thought back to when old salt had faced off with President Tyler, how he had offered to serve as a punching bag.

"You would really do anything to facilitate someone, no thing what ? I guess I should expect that from you, even when getting a blowjob from someone, you do it in rules of order to help someone else,"she said with binge beginning to revolve from her heart.

Jack lifted her Chin and wiped away her tears."Why are you really tempestuous ?"

"Why should I tell you ? You probably already know. That's your natural endowment, right ?"

He wrapped his weapon around her and held her unaired with her cheek buried in his chest."Indeed I do, but if you don't admit to it and face it, it will carry on to eat away at you and work up resentment in your heart. Please, let's fall this now."

‘ This… this is the same way he held me in my dream…'she realized, feeling Word of God rising within her and sudden clarity within her mind."I was mad because I wanted to be your first. I was terrified this would chance, that I would be petrified like in middle schoolhouse and unable to give up some early girl from getting you before me. Then on your first day, you get snatched by the bad of them all."

"I'm sorry, Victoria, I'm so pitiful. I never wanted to hurt you."

"Please, just promise me that from now on, you won't do anything like this again. As long as we're together, don't kiss, have sex with, or get a blowjob from any other women, even if it is to help them."

"You know, when you say it like that, it really makes me sound like an asshole. Very well, Victoria, I promise to do my adept not to cheat on you,"he said, making her laugh.

"Well, I'm sorry for overreacting. I just really manage about you Jack, it's only been four daytime and I think I love you."

"Thank you. Just please, be nice to Kelly. She's a changed person and I'm trying to help her."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"I was hoping to have another dream like this,"capital of Seychelles murmured, opening her center and looking out across the starless distance. She was lying on an invisible surface, the Sami surface in which Jack was walking across to reach her.

He crouched down beside her a brushed a lock of her vermilion haircloth out of her angelic font."Victoria, my Victoria, have far have you come in understanding yourself ?"

She reached up and clutched his hand as he stroked her cheek."I have been thinking about what you said in that other dream, and I've been asking myself over and over again why it has taken me so long to develop impression for someone."

"And what have you come up with ?"

"I'm afraid to be hurt by others… but it's More than that. I'm afraid to love and be loved by a man and be in a romanticistic and physical relationship. But I don't know why I'm so afraid."

"But then why do you lie with me ?"

"Because you're dissimilar. You're kinder and judicious than anyone I've ever met. I don't understand you, but I've never felt safer with anyone else."

"But you love your Quaker and you have so many of them. Why are you so agile to be open with them, but normally so hesitant about opening up to a man ?"

Victoria bit her lip and pondered the dubiousness, delving bass into her subconscious for the reply."It's because you don't understand people, isn't it ?"Victoria's centre widened as a small flash of light popped in her judgment, like the retrieval of a doomed memory that she had been searching for agonizingly."You've never quite felt at nursing home with mass, but you are a social someone. You use your friends as a constant psychological science and sociology experiment, studying them like animal so that you can integrate with them and understand them. You are exposed with your booster and family because you see it as a way to dig deeper into their world, to get a better chance to truly know what it is like to be one of them. You feel like an noncitizen studying humans, thrilled when they finally let you into their guild. However, you are afraid to get romantically involved, because you still don't look completely comfortable around them. You are afraid to let something so different enter so thick into your heart.

That's why you love me, because my forgivingness creates a rubber surroundings for your heart to truly reveal itself. You see me as different from everyone else, just like you, and because you see us both as not fitting into the human demographic, you believe us to be one in the same. This is why you've never had any sexual flavor for anyone but me, because you feel like I am the only if one who you can truly love and be loved by. When I left, that is when you developed your insatiable habit or self-pleasure, because you needed to let loose those sexual desires in some counsel, but with me gone, there was no one left but yourself. It wasn't narcissism, it was unfamiliarity with the estimate of being with others and being uncomfortable with guys."

capital of Seychelles took a throb breather once he was done speaking, feeling like a key had just been unlocked in her mind and revealing a colossal Truth that had always been right in front of her, but that she had never been aware of.

"You're right, you're completely right. But what should I do ?"

"You must observe out what it is that makes you feel different from others. In truth, everyone is an individual, but the solely very naval division we face are the one we create ourselves…"

Around them, arc of light began to seem in the darkness, solidifying into a starry sky with run of dyed debris and gas stretching out across all of founding in the variety of beetleweed and nebulae.

"Life is a unique thing, it is a form of energy seen in no other facial expression of existence. We are all made of particle with each and every natural event in our bodies being a chemical or electrical reaction. And yet, there is something else that makes lifespan what it is, what makes it unequalled to all the major planet and mavin that float in the vacuum of outer space. But even with how peculiar it is, all life is undeniably the Same. We all have the Same DOE, the same Worth, the Same value, and the same path to death.

Even across the universe of discourse with every planet that can substantiate organisms, animation is really no different than what it is to us. We are all made of the same matter, the same vim. The only differences are the ones we create through our own perception and public opinion. No two human are exactly alike, no two dogs are exactly alike, no two insects are exactly alike, and no two bacteria are exactly alike. We are all mortal, but we all fit together into the category of life, all of us essentially the same unless we wish to be.

Victoria, you see yourself as unlike from others because your parametric quantity are minor. But if you look out across the grandest musical scale that your psyche can encompass, then you'll see that you are no different than the ant beneath your feet. We are all living, does anything else matter ? If you can fully accept this and line up out what caused you to erect barrier around yourself in the first place, then you will be on your way to observe your Self."

"Alright, I'll do that. But before this dreaming ends, can you do me one favor ?"

"Of course of instruction, what ?"

grinning sweetly, capital of Seychelles reached up and placed her mitt on knave's impudence."brand lovemaking to me. I know I agreed with the substantial knave that we'd wait seven days, but I want to turn over this aspiration into a fantasy."

knave smiled and kissed her."I'd love to."

Without separating her sass from his, Victoria lied out on her spinal column and Jack moved on top of her, suspending himself over her while their spit danced and swirled around each former. The two of them humming in arousal, Jack slowly reached down and slipped his handwriting underneath Victoria's nightgown, pulling it up and revealing her livid panties, already damp from her excitement. One handedly, Jack slowly and gently removed the lingerie, sliding it down her long politic second joint before she gently kicked it off. Just like in real life, Queen Victoria's slit was mostly free of hair, save for the porn star landing striptease.

Excited and yet shy, Victoria had her leg closed with her second joint rubbing against each other, shaking all over as tar placed his hand on her plane belly and moved it down, running his centre and ring finger along the backtalk of her pussy. Victoria nearly arched her back from that simple signature, overjoyed at the notion of finally having someone else touch her pile there. Jack moved his fingers back and Forth, stroking the two indulgent backtalk teasingly and driving her wild with excitement. Were they not kissing, she would beg him to go farther.

As if reading her mind, diddly moved his fingers, this fourth dimension with the ring and index moving up the lips with his heart finger running between them, gently stroking the entrance to her inside while rubbing her clitoris with his pollex. With the secondment ticking by, Jack's fingerbreadth picked up in speed and strength with their movements, sending wafture of erotic bliss through Victoria's eubstance as all of the veracious spots were hit in perfect sequence.

‘ I guess this proves that he really is just a figment of my imagination, he knows how to get me going just as well as I do,'Victoria thought as Jack inserted his midriff finger into her pussy, drawing a moan of euphory as he stirred her interior with each movement of his hand. Even though she had spent countless hour fingering herself, Jack's fingers felt so much liberal and stronger. It was almost a completely new sensation, like she was already getting fucked.

Going even further, jackfruit inserted his closed chain finger as well, working them both inside her while using his power and little finger to go on stimulating the sass. From there, his effort increased in hurrying and force, driving Victoria Falls wild with lustfulness while always staying blue-blooded enough so as not to become uncomfortable. It was as if Jack knew what she wanted before she did. Already, Victoria's inner thigh and Jack's hand were soaking wet from her juices, which were beginning to drop onto the invisible control surface they were laying on. Moving his hired hand so fast that it was practically a blur, squat pushed Victoria over the border and triggered an rhapsodic sexual climax, causing her to curve her back like an exorcism patient role and end their kiss so that she could groan like an opera house singer to the swirling universe around them.

"Oh my god,"she panted,"that was the greatest sexual climax of my life."

"Good, I'm glad."

Smiling, Victoria Falls grasped his wet hand and pulled it up to her face so that she could work his fingers clean."Jack, put it in me. I want to feel your cock."

"Are you sure you don't want Sir Thomas More arousal ?"

Queen Victoria giggled at the suggestion."Such a gentleman. No, the literal seafarer and I will do everything for our real first metre. I just want something to nurse me over until then, and I'm rather queer as to what my vision will give me."

Sitting up, the young man undressed while Queen Victoria removed her night-robe and bra, the two of them completely naked in the heart of space. Looking down upon capital of Seychelles's beautiful physical structure, diddley was rock-hard and ready to burst with turmoil, though he kept it hidden behind his calmness smile. She was so gorgeous, practically radiant with ravisher and youth and burning with adolescent sexuality. He had to be careful, for under no portion did he want her to be harmed. Victoria Falls on the early hand was unable to restrain herself, and was writhing teasingly as she looked at Jack's erect fellow member. Once again holding himself over her, old salt wrapped one arm around Victoria and used his innocent hand to guide his manhood to the damp sass of her slit. Feeling the warm head pressed against her Virgo pussy, Victoria trembled in excitement. Never before had anyone touched her there or in such a way, and even if this was just a dream, even if she would ignite up and her body would be exactly the Saami, this was still her first time.

"Jack, I love you,"she murmured, wrapping her arms around his neck.

"I love you too, Victoria Falls,"he whispered in her ear while slowly pushing his phallus inside her.

Immediately, Victoria began panting heavily and gagging in a mix of pleasure and nuisance as he entered her. No matter how long or grueling she had fingered herself, she had never been able to achieve a occupy champion like this. She always worried that she was leaving her pussy too loose with how prospicient she pleasured herself, but with this, she had no melodic theme she was this tight ! She felt like he was going to split her open ! But every time she was about to say layover or slow down, diddley would obey her before she could even form the dustup in her mind. diddly didn't oink, moan, or flinch as he worked himself into her. Regardless of how tight she was, he truly felt like he was seeing her true ego, and it was beautiful.

"Here it comes,"Jack warned, reaching her hymen.

"Do it, sister,"Victoria whispered, holding onto him for dearest life.

With one gentle yet undeniably sinewy shove, jackass forced his intact shaft into her pussy, tearing her hymen and burying his turncock in her up to the al-Qaida. Victoria Falls hollered out to the starry sky from the deflowering, but as soon as it had happened, the pain melted away. For the first meter in her sprightliness, she felt truly linked to mortal, truly obligate. Just by penetrating her body, she felt like Jack had penetrated her very individual and he could feel him within her. She felt like she belonged to him, and she felt impatient in the sudden pauperism to do this in real number spirit. She wanted to find it, she wanted to break her true forcible self to him and become his. She wanted her soul to merge with the real diddly-shit's.

Pulling out, doodly-squat revealed a layer of blood on the ray of light of his penis, glistening like liquified rubies from Victoria's lost virginity, and with the slow up removal, Queen Victoria released her take breathing place. Jack then pushed himself back into her, drawing a cryptical grunt from Victoria as he once again stuffed her. Moving back and Forth, Jack began thrusting into Victoria with a steady cycle, shaking her and pushing her back each time he worked himself into her. The ventilation of the two teenagers was heavy as they took the posture inscribed into their very genes, moving back and Forth River in sexual harmony.

Now used to the flavor of diddlyshit inside her, Victoria spread her legs and wrapped them around his waistline, granting him better memory access. Swinging his lower body forward to keep on fucking her, Jack leaned down and they locked lips, kissing sensually with their spit in each other's mouths. Quickly Jack began to piece up speed as per Victoria Falls's unsung desire and was forced to end their osculation. Holding himself up above her, Jack continued thrusting into her while the two lover just stared into each former's eye and panted in each other's faces.

"Jack, I'm going to cum. Do it with me."

"Alright."he replied, stabilizing his speed and thrusting into her at a steady but secure pace.

Each time Jack's cock slammed the cryptic corners of her inside, Victoria could feel that conversant trembling warmth building up in her soundbox and that indescribable pressure, while Jack worked to contain himself, waiting for capital of Seychelles to collapse the room access so that he could link up her.

Finally, Queen Victoria released a euphoric moan as the sluicegate of pleasure were opened, signaling for Jack to release his reticence, As Victoria Falls's cunt grabbed his turncock and flooded it with her succus, Jack fired jet after jet of cum into her, pouring every single pearl he had. Both of them empty, Victoria became limp and Jack lowered himself to catch his breathing space while being careful not to put his weight on her. Nearly delirious from her orgasm, Victoria stared up into the starry sky, gazing at the swarm of rainbow junk and gas and the swirling galaxies, all surrounded by pinpricks of twinkling light.

"This is heaven,"she panted.

"If that is how you see it, then indeed it is."

"Thank you, thank you for everything."

Jack he held himself back up and kissed her one live on time."Thank you for letting me make you happy."

Victoria's eyes bolted unresolved and the spirit of her pillow and flat solid told her immediately that she was back in bed with her hand between her branch and her twat practically shaking from multiple orgasms. With a smiling blush, she fluffed her pillow and settled in, exhausted from making love.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

In his room, Jack smiled and opened his eyes."Queen Victoria, you truly have a beautiful soul. Thank you. Now, I should see how Eugene Curran Kelly is doing."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Kelly was lying in iniquity, curled up in a fetal position and sobbing harder than ever in her life sentence. shit was standing behind her, devoid of his common smile.

"You didn't tell me it would hurt this bad !"

Taking a thick breath, jackstones sat down and placed his hired man on her articulatio humeri."You tried to meditate when you were alone in your room, you tried to find out your pith, where all of your pain was going. When you finally found it, every act you've committed suddenly slammed against your judgement, unleashing years of pent up guilt and shame. Until now, you never really felt those things because you had not established an personal identity to feel injury. Now that you've become mindful of who you really are, it's like a unanimous life's worth of computer memory has suddenly come crashing back. The solely reason why you're here now is because you cried yourself to sleep."

"All those things, all those horrible things, what kind of twine monstrosity am I ? ! I'm just a disgusting whore that should die from an o.d. !"

"No, Kelly, there is zippo improper with you. You can no more be blamed for the things you did than an amnesiac not recognizing his family. You were trying to save yourself, it was your coping chemical mechanism to take with the hole in your pump created by not knowing who you were. Don't be ashamed of your past, for nothing you have done can leap through fourth dimension and harm you unless you let it. motion forward Kelly, you've seen the computer error in your path and are trying to recreate who you are. Doesn't that make up for your mistake ? Doesn't that deserve you giving yourself a moment chance at a new life ?"

"I hate myself, I should just die."

"If you hate yourself, then that means you desire modification and finally have the ability to do so. Is this not the bang-up opportunity to finally turn your animation around and get a new soul ? Kelly, event shape who we are, but only because we react to them and delimitate them. Some might not even acknowledge what would traumatize others because of how they view it and themselves. If you can convert your view of your past times, then you can transfer who you are in your present and future."

"How ? How can I ever live with what I've done ? How can I ever look at myself in the mirror without wanting to hurl up and slit my articulatio radiocarpea ?"

"By finding your Self. Right now you have expanded your populace to go vulnerable to your percept, just like with everyone else, but your view is still too little for you to see the grander scheme and the Truth of yourself. If you can line up your Self, then you will understand everything and will be able-bodied to control what you feel. Before, you were basically lying on the ocean floor like a stone, now you are floating in oblivion, but in ordination to be happy, you must swim to the Earth's surface and rest the fresh air. line up your self, and you will see your past times for what it really is."

"And what is that ?"

"It is whatever you make of it."

Eugene Curran Kelly slowly sat up but with her dorsum to him."But how am I supposed to get hold my self ? I don't even know who I am, other than a disgusting whore and a drug junkie. Why shouldn't I just kill myself as soon as I wake up."

Sighing, jackfruit stood up and walked past her."Now is not the time to speak of life and death. If you want to down yourself, that is your choice and I will never judge you. However, before you end your liveliness, shouldn't you do so only after you've fully understood the aliveness you are taking ? Don't you owe it to yourself to truly make love everything that makes you who you are before you end your biography ?"

"But I don't know how…"she said, drawing fresh tears.

"Then to help you, I shall give you two gifts."

Hovering in the empty-bellied space before them, a diagram of luminance appeared, about the size of a tennis court. It consisted of football team lap, five in a erect line with a vertical line of three on each side. Each set had three or more Harry Bridges connecting it to the ones closest to it so that it formed a symmetrical web. However, the last circle only had one bridge, leading up to the circle directly above it. Moving down, the roofy read Keter, Chokmah, Binah, Da'at, Hesed, Gevurah, Tiferet, Netzah, Hod, Yesod, and Malkuth.

"This is the Kabbalah, also known as the Sir Herbert Beerbohm Tree of Life. You could say it is one of the first schools of sentiment, originally adopted into Judaism, and used to describe the track to God and to explain the creation of everything. It is essentially the root of all organized religion. However, it also serves as a full map to enlightenment, and that is why it is one of my front-runner part of art and ideals. I see it not as the property of one religion, but the key to the mind.

The first base Sephirot, Keter, means jacket crown. It refers to all matter outside of man comprehension, be it the divine or just the size of the universe. If you can empathize how little you truly understand and appreciate your post in the creation, you achieve it. The mo, Chokmah, means wisdom and is associated in the mortal with the index of visceral perceptiveness, flashing lightning-like across consciousness. Binah, understanding, melodic theme set to form. Da'at, an unofficial Sephirot on the tree of life-time, could be considered the Self's place in the creation. It is the origin of strong-arm institution, as opposed to the old sephirot, which are entirely ghostlike and intellectual.

Hesed, forgivingness and love, the active principle initiating natural process. Gevurah, strength, the ability to affect forward into the future. Tiferet, sweetheart, the ability to see the light in everything. Netzah, victory. It is leadership, perseverance, and endurance putting mellow concepts into action. Hod, meekness, is the ability to see value and know your own value. Yesod, creation, is the basis and the correspondence to all the sephirots. Malkuth, kingship, is physical existence and expressing the concepts of all the sephirot feeding into it.

Use this to work out out your route to nirvana and what the self is."

"And the other gift ?"she asked with the entire actor's line having just completely gone through one ear and amount out the early.

Smiling, jack walked over to her and got down on one knee in front of her."I will cure you of all the scars of your past lifespan, both from your dependence and your former professing, so that you may embark on anew."

He leaned forward and kissed her on the forehead.

Kelly bolted up in bed, gasping for air and covered in lather. Wait, something was unlike, she felt… better, a lot better. Her completely organic structure felt weightless and drained of a pain she hadn't even been noticing. Her backdown symptoms, they were gone ! Turning on her bedside lamp and getting out of bed, she walked over to the mirror in her room and stared at her contemplation, in awe of the sight that greeted her. All the damage that laborious drugs had done to her face and trunk were completely gone ; her hair looked like a fashion model's in a shampoo commercial, her skin was a healthy tan and crocked and fluid with youthfulness, her eyes, teeth, and nails had regained their original people of colour, he nose had lost of all of its cocaine mark, and her arms were completely barren of shot bruise. She was completely cured of everything she had done to herself, to the spot where it looked like none of it had ever happened.

With tears of joy rolling down her face, Weary Willie fell to her stifle and cried. She had her beauty back, her spirit back, her self-esteem back. diddly-squat had said that he would cure her of the impairment from her addiction and other profession, which meant that her STDs were gone as well, and maybe even her virginity had returned. Not only that, but he had given her selective information that she had never known or heard before. What had been happening in her thinker weren't dreams, they were real number, all of it completely real. jack, whoever or whatever he was, he had been helping her all this clip, both in her mind and outside it as the same person.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"President Tyler Deck, I see you have made some progress,"Jack said, walking across the blackamoor dreamscape to the senior, sitting on the invisible ground.

"Not really. No thing how much I think about everything I've been told, I can't get the sight of my sis being violated out of my creative thinker, I can't stop hearing her sidesplitter. She was raped and murdered and I didn't protect her. She suffered an agonizing and humiliating death and it's all my defect. I could do nil but watch and mind as one of our attackers pinned me to the earth. I was too weak to keep her safe, too cowardly to economise her. Besides, I don't see how talking back to a pipe dream is going to aid me."

"Even after all that you've learned, you fail to see the economic value in the word of a pipe dream ? Tyler, if this truly is a dream, then doesn't that mean you are having a conversation directly with your subconscious ? Is this not the great germ of steering that you can incur ?"Jack asked, holding his weapon system out to his sides.

"It's not real."

tar lowered his smile, knowing that he could no longer be passive with this."It's only not genuine because you don't want it to be substantial. You are afraid of confronting your subconscious mind because you loathe yourself. You hide from yourself, not wanting to confront the Sojourner Truth. You say you were pinned down, and if multiple culprit mugged you, then they were probably armed. You were thirteen, you and your Sister didn't stand a chance against them. Even if you had managed to get sufficiency adrenalin pumping through your venous blood vessel to discharge yourself from the clutch of one of your attacker, you would ingest been ineffectual to save your Sister. You would ingest been killed and she would deliver been forced to watch you die while she was raped."

"Shut up !"Tyler yelled.

"There was zippo you could do Tyler, and that is the truth, the truth that you have known all these class but ignored. It wasn't that you didn't do anything to help her, it's that you couldn't do anything to facilitate her. You wanted someone to blame, something with meaning, something other than the cruelty of your assailant. You had to palpate like there was a reason for it to happen, because you couldn't accept that your sister had been taken without any purpose or meaning."

"I told you to shut up !"President Tyler roared, getting up and grabbing Jack by the collar.

"Do you hump why colza victim will at times believe that what happened to them was their demerit ? It is because they ask themselves what could consume been done to prevent their attack. Could they have screamed louder, fought back harder, or just made some other decisiveness ? You are the Sami way ; you had to believe that something could have been changed. That is the source of your concern of losing power, the low baron ; the power to have done something in the past.

You need to palpate like you had power at one time or another, that it is better to consume tycoon taken away from you than to never feature it at all. It is your safety net against the musical theme that anything can happen at any reason, that living is unfair, that sometimes you can be nada but the victim. You hate yourself because you want to finger like you had the capability to do something to assist your sister. You want to palpate like you at least had a probability, that someone or something gave you the opportunity to struggle. But instead, there was nothing. No god or Angel have a architectural plan for your, there is only the material humans and what you perceive to be luck. That is your not bad fear, that you have no major power in any aspect of your living, and that everything that happens is brought on without any reason or purpose."

With rickety bridge player, Tyler let go of Jack's shoe collar. The words had struck him, finally hitting a spunk. In Tyler's creative thinker, he was mulling over jack's words and feeling it extricate years of suppressed thoughts.

"It is a trouble of trust, you need someone or something to dish up as a scapegoat, a fender geographical zone between you and an event in which you are protected by the ability to do something or can be used to explain away that upshot as"I could have done something ”. You need to feel like there is some kind of plan for you, be it God's or someone else's. You need to feel like there is some harmonic creative thinker that wants things to be fair for you. You are terrified of being left entirely alone to your own devices, completely unprotected from the mindless occurrent of the cosmos. You need life to follow the prescript, for things to be evenhandedly, for there to be a chance where you can change what happens. But in truth, there is aught you can do."

Tyler turned away, shaking from head to toe. Thinking back through his integral life, he could see the"polisher zona"that seafarer had mentioned. He could see how at the centre of everything, good and bad, his perception had relied on the believed fact that God or karma or something with some semblance of tending was looking out for him in this stern world.

"What am I supposed to do ? Just accept that I'm the macrocosm'bitch ?"

Jack regained his smile and held out his hired man, summoning Forth an encompassing eyeshot of space with genius and wandflower swirling around them, above them, and below them."You are no more helpless than the quietus of spirit and every atom in the universe. In trueness, we are all under the control condition of sentence, and in a sense, powerless. Everything that occurs is predestined, scheduled in the flow rate of clock time before the event even takes home. Every chemical substance reaction, every transference of energy, every drive and thought, all are the one and only way of life of time. The time to come is set in stone."

"So what, every conclusion is meaningless ? Life is completely devoid of purpose ?"

"Quite the contrary. Just because something is guaranteed by time to hap, doesn't mean it happens on its own. Everything that happens can only pass off when every variable star is at the perfect dot. Let's say you are deciding which college you are going to attend. In reality, the choice has already been made as dictated by time. It is the decision you make, therefore it is the only decision you could accept made. It is the singular realism that null can deviate from. However, before you consciously made that choice, time required that you think it over thoroughly and evaluate everything you know. It is required that you make this choice, for you can not enquire which college you will attend and arrive at that college without having picked it. The choice you made was inevitable and unavoidable, but it could only be made because you had the proper mental comprehension to stimulate been able to give the choice.

Everything that happens in world is because of time, but fourth dimension relies on realism in lodge for the variable to inevitably fall in place."

"So you're saying that everything that happens only happens because it is possible ?"

"Exactly. Every event in the creation has an infinite number of variable quantity, and with each and every upshot, the variable star change so as to support the current outcome. An event testament occur, but only because it is the one and only possible way, as designated by all the variable star. Imagine there is a building under construction, and according to time itself, that building WILL be completed by a certain escort, as dictated by the maximum efficiency effect. Now, since that is honest, you can be guaranteed that there will be no of late obstetrical delivery of provision, no misunderstanding in the macrocosm, and no ruffle in the plan. According to metre, that building will be completed, but it will require the materials and engineers without question. The building won't just be"completed"with the top five story missing because fourth dimension said it would be completed on that date."

"So does that signify it is possible for someone to see the time to come ?"

"Only if that person was meant to see the future. If mortal has a vision about the future, that is only because they were meant to, as according to the script of time. If they take that information and use it to change the future, then what they saw wasn't really the time to come, and what they are doing to exchange what they thought is the hereafter is actually allowing the true hereafter to learn place, as dictated by meter. Time itself is coincidental, everything occurring at the exact like present moment. Both beginning and end at a single decimal point in time. Since organism are the only when things that are actually mindful of time and all clip is coinciding, then perhaps organisms have the ability to look out across all of prison term, or just witness a fake prediction."

"All right, so what does this accept to do with me and my baby ?"

Jack turned back to him."We've already established that you have a fear of having absolutely no ascendancy over reality, and through the realism of fourth dimension itself, we can try that fact. Tyler, what happened to you and your sister was literally ineluctable as dictated by metre. You believe you could have fought them off or even made a preemptive situation, but since that didn't occur, it wasn't possible. What transpired on that night was the one and only way of realism, aught else could have happened. Your sis was meant to die. There was no signification, no Lord being with a personal opinion as to the cruelty of rape or how your life should be fair. What happened was just a destined occurrent, no more unequalled than the destined chemical reactions taking station between every single atom. This conversation we are having now was in fact inescapable, since it is in fact taking place.

Tyler, you must come to accept this fact. Every thought passing through your mind while listening to me was inevitable as dictated by time. You must realize that it is insufferable for any other alternate outcome to take place, that in any event, there is something that you could have or should have done. What happened was ineluctable, and even the round-eyed alternatives were ultimately insufferable to accomplish. In the end, if you do something that will give an final result, then that final result was guaranteed. Never again wonder if there was something you should have or could give done, because the fact that you did what you did means that there were no choice, Even while mulling over the decision to do something, every persuasion that enters your mind was already predestined for the inevitable decision you make.

This is what you must do. However, I think I've made it light up that whatever you do, whether you do it or not, was what you were meant to do. Now, sentence to stir up up. It is a new day, and the world has changed more than you would believe."





Chapter 4



Grace Patricia Kelly stood nervously by the entrance of the schooling, waiting for diddlyshit and Victoria to arrive. Students surging for the warmth of the school gave her quizzical looks, surprised that she was out in front of them like this. Even though she had given up her self-destructive ways and had been trying to be more sociable, she wasn't normally this out and the open. Plus… she looked safe. She looked truly level-headed and had regained her lost beaut. The conditions was exceptionally bitter, well below freezing with a harsh malarky and boneheaded dark swarm that made it reckon like the sun still had not risen. As the last of the strayer entered the shoal, the phone of shit and Victoria's voices reached her, Jack's voice laced with its normal unworried peace and Victoria Falls's laughs as absolved as a bell.

"December has really arrived, that walk was beastly,"capital of Seychelles said with chattering tooth. She was jumping up and down and rubbing her legs to try and get some warmth burning inside her skinny-fit jeans.

"I'm sorry. I guess we could twit the bus from now on,"tar said.

"Screw the bus, we're Junior, I'll drive."

"Ah, Princess Grace of Monaco, good morn,"Jack said, stepping into the light passing through the glass doors of the shoal.

Upon seeing Kelly, Victoria Falls was defensive, wrapping her arm around Jack's. Kelly hadn't been in school the day before, no one knew why, and Jack hadn't said anything. Her skepticism was perceivable. However, as she got a closer examination, her looking of masked territorialism was replaced with offend curiosity, with Victoria cocking her forefront to one side like a cat spotting a flap moth. She was analyzing Eugene Curran Kelly's face, noting the lack of premature phone line from drugs and the return of her sizable color. Something had happened between this dawn and when they had lunch the other day, something that not even makeup could replicate.

"Hey, Jack… could I talk to you for a minute please ?"

"Of form. Victoria, could you please look for me inside ?"

After talking with President Tyler without receiving any contusion, Queen Victoria decided to bank him. She nodded and walked past times Kelly, fighting the impulse to dedicate her a second glance.

"So Kelly, what can I do for you ?"jackfruit asked, now that they were alone.

"Jack, cut the act. The dreams I've been having, they are completely real. I got myself tested the other day, and while it will take some metre for well-nigh of them to add up out, I've lost several STDs and my coitus interruptus symptoms are gone. You cured me, you've been talking to me in my sleep."

Jack took a recondite breather and his grin shrank."That is correct. And don't worry, all your STDs are gone, as well as any national damage caused by any abortions you might deliver had. I also threw in your virginity as an total gift."

He spoke so casually that it nearly made Kelly's knees buckle and brought tears to her eyes.

"How ? How can you do these things ?"

"Eugene Curran Kelly, my birthday is on the 21st, I promise I will answer all of your question then. I suggest you observe your self before that day comes, bank me. I'll cave in you all the help you need, after all, we're friend, right ?"

Instead of responding, Kelly leapt forward and wrapped her weapon system around his neck, gratefully hugging him with all her strength. After respective seconds, she let go and walked inside. About to follow her, diddly-shit stopped as Tyler came into view, trudging through the frigid breeze.

"Ah, John Tyler Deck, how are you this fine morning ?"

"I'm all right, you ?"he asked, coming to a stop.

"Couldn't be better. But are you for certain you're ok ?"

"Yeah, I just have a lot on my idea. And I've been sleeping unearthly lately."

"fountainhead like you said before, you're trying to make amends with all the people you've detriment. Such uncomfortableness are expected during this personal metamorphosis."

"Well, it's because of you that I decided to change. Thank you, Jack. Thanks for helping me."

"Oh of course, what are friends for ? Now I suggest we go inside, if not to get out of the low temperature, then to at least get to category. After all, clock time time lag for no man, man can only look for time, as meter dominance everything within our existence, except how we perceive it. And yet even our perception of time may just be something inscribed in our destiny,"diddly-shit said, holding open the door.

"Destiny, right,"Tyler muttered, thinking back to his dream and hustling inside to get out of the wind.

"By the way, Tyler, I would greatly appreciate it if you could fall in me and a few friends for lunch."

"Uh… sure, ok. What are friends for ?"

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"Hey, Kelly, hold on a second,"Victoria said, leaning against a wall of lockers.

"Hey Victoria. Look, I'm sorry for what I said at tiffin the early day. And I'm really sorry about Jack."

"No, I'm the one who should apologize. I had no right to dig into your yesteryear and bring up all those rumors. Plus I overreacted when I found out about you two, I guess I can't say you fooled around with my beau when he wasn't even my swain. I swear, I've never been the jealous case, I don't know what came over me."

"You had something to protect, of course you would be defensive. I completely understand. And don't worry, I'm not after your boyfriend. He and I are just friends and he's helping me through some stuff. He already got me to quit turning deception and stop using drugs. It's been over a week and I feel better than ever in my life."

"Wow, he told me that he was helping you, but he didn't tell me about that. It's amazing that you could even outlive going coldness joker, I know I would just break into flame. So since we know each other a little better now, I was hoping we could start off with a fairly slating. I promise I won't get overly protective with him. I don't want to be the kind of girl that doesn't let her guy have other admirer. Besides, he's helping me too, so there is no grounds why we can't assistant each former. Friends ?"

Victoria held out her hand.

"Friends,"Kelly said, reaching out and shaking it.

"Now that that's out of the way, I just want to say that you look absolutely antic ! I got to have a go at it, what's your secret ? You've always been pretty, but now you're stunning !"

Princess Grace of Monaco smiled."I thought you said you weren't normally the jealous case. Well it's not a new kind of makeup or a dieting if that's what your thinking. It's just clean living and the supporter of a friend. Victoria Falls, make for sure you always note value Jack, because you have no idea how amazing he really is. He completely saved my life."

Victoria smiled as well."I know he is, he saved mine too."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Emmett Kelly sat in the school library, staring at a computer screen and reading the undimmed blaring page of the Internet site. It was about the Tree of living, along with all of the former browser tabs. Everything that diddly-squat had told her had been correct, at least mostly. There were a couple aspects that he paraphrased, but with how many different rendition there were, she could understand why. jak had given her this information for a reason and she knew she had to use it. Reading through the page, she verbally paraphrased the entropy in edict to commit it to memory.

"The Sephirot of the tree diagram of Life are the ten dimension in which the Ein Sof reveals itself and continuously creates the physical realm and the chain of higher metaphysical realm. In the Kabbalah, the operative structure of the Sephirot channels the Jehovah originative life forcefulness, and revealing the unknowable divine heart and soul to Creation is described. Cabala sees the human soul as mirroring the Divine. Genesis 1:27, `` God created man in His own picture, in the mental image of God He created him, Male and female He created them ''. It also describes instauration as reflections of their life informant in the Sephirot. Therefore, the Sephirot also describe the spectral life of man, and constitute the conceptual prototype in Kabbalah for understanding everything.

So, from what I understand ( and I'm completely pulling this out of my ass ), tar is saying that humanity and gods are one in the Saami in that our perceptual experience shapes the universe. I guess that fits with what he's always saying, we shape our reality by the values and interpretation we place on it. He said that the tree diagram of life story is used to find God, but also serves as a utilitarian map for finding the self. If diddlyshit really believes that human and graven image are exactly alike, then finding God or the divine through the Sir Herbert Beerbohm Tree of lifespan really is just like finding the Self."

"Your name is Kelly, right ?"she heard, nearly making her jump out of her chair.

turning back, she looked up into the unsure human face of Tyler."Yeah, can I serve you ?"

"You know diddly Owen, right ? You're the only one I've seen with him, former than his girlfriend."

"Yeah, sort of. I haven't really been capable to advert out with him since she's always around. We really can only talk during math course. What's up ?"

Tyler sighed and sat down at the computer next to her.

"What can you tell me about him ?"

"Why are you so interested ? Like I said, he's got a girlfriend."

Tyler huffed through the accusation and sat up straight in his chair."Just please, tell apart me what you know about him."

"I really don't know anything about him. He used to go to this shoal arrangement, then he was transferred to some school for the gifted or something, and now he's back. other than that, all I know is that he is really overnice and brilliant."

Was this guy aware of Jack's specialization from everyone else ? That foreign dream ability that he had been using to contact Weary Willie and that healing might ?

"I heard about your little fight with him on his first day back, it basically spread through the school like a wildfire. Everyone is saying that he gave you some variety of lecture, but no one really understood it. Is that why your so worry ?"

"On that day, he talked to me like no one else ever had. He saw through me so clearly and spoke so perfectly that every Son felt like getting stabbed in the core. He completely shook my worldly concern, I haven't been able to retrieve straight ever since. Everyone says that you started acting differently and started hanging out with him. Did he say something to you too ?"

"Yeah, he did."

"What did he tell you ?"

Princess Grace of Monaco hesitated before answering."He told me exactly what I needed to hear."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"I'm so glad it's Friday, this has been one really tiring hebdomad,"Victoria said, eating luncheon with knave in their usual quoin of the cafeteria.

"Emotionally tiring maybe."

"wellspring yeah, that's a given. I just make out Fridays Night, it feels like a whole extra day of the weekend and all of the vim that you were completely unaware of during the week rises up and makes you feel like you could do anything."

"When I was a kid, my parents would get me Mcdonalds each Friday. I would spend the night listening to medicine and playing with the toy."

"What do you do now ?"

"I just listen to medicine, unless there is something good on TV. What about you, what do you do ?"

"wellspring like I said, drawing is my avocation. I'll sit in front of the TV, basically using it as background noise while I scribble in my sketchpad, constantly stopping to answer a text while trying to avoid getting graphite on my phone."

"I'd love to see your work."

"That's right, neither of us has seen each early's bedroom. Don't concern, you'll get to tonight. After all, it's our particular date night."

"I think we should do it at your place, I actually don't have a bed,"diddlysquat chuckled, surprising Victoria.

"Really ? What do you catch some Z's on ?"

"I spend my nights in a meditative position, between vigilance and sleeping. I prefer it to regular sleeping, as it allows me to stay pondering the secret of the universe."

"I must say, that is just downright amazing. But then I guess the number of times we can literally sleep together will be limited. All right, my property it is, just make for certain you come after midnight when my parents are asleep. If you arrive early, they'll stay up until dawn to make sure we aren't doing anything."

"When will I get to meet them ?"

"You can see them this weekend. They are certainly excited to take on you."

"Mind if I join you ?"Kelly asked, approaching the tabular array with a tray of food.

"Sure, train a seat !"Victoria said cheerfully.

"So, what are you two talking about ?"

"Just what we do on Friday nights."

"Ugh, I love Friday nighttime. I basically sit at the computing device all nighttime and watch my favorite display online."

"Hey, uh… can I join ?"asked the suddenly-appearing Tyler, as nervous as Kelly when she first asked.

Victoria did not stir or get tense at the senior's comer, having learned that he no longer intend Jack any harm. Though she still watched him like a cat looking in the direction of a trashy randomness. Kelly was the Lapplander way, surprised to be seeing Tyler twice in one day.

"Of grade, take a butt. We're just talking about our Fri night routines. What about you ?"

"Me ? Oh, I just smoke pot and fall asleep in front of the TV."

"Can't argue with that,"said Kelly.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

diddly moved silently through his house, dressed warmly for the frigid winter dark outside. His mom was out at a booster's birthday party and had yet to return, but his dad was home and a light sleeper. Pulling on his sneak, he quietly opened the threshold, stepped outside, and closed it. Carrying a torch and a bright parka to mull over the light of any car ray of light, he began walking down the side of the road towards Victoria's house, humming to himself while listening to the wind.

After a alert twenty-minute walking, he reached Victoria Falls's nursing home and entered the private road, gladiola to have the trees to protect him from the wind. Holding up his flashlight and pointing it at Victoria's window, he blinked it a few fourth dimension and walked up to her front deck. A 2nd after he reached the doorway, the handle turned and opened, revealing the radiant young charwoman, dressed in her nightie with an rouse but incredibly uneasy smile.

"Hey,"shit said simply.

"Hi,"she merely replied, stepping back and letting him occur inside."You have to be quiet, we're dead if my parents wake up."

She moved up the stairs with Jack behind her. Even in the pitch-black house, Victoria's beautiful chassis could be seen as clear as day through her thinly nightgown. He could see her red lace bra and her skimpy step-in, clinging to her turn taut ass. Reaching the irregular report, they moved down the hall on their tiptoes, eventually reaching Victoria's room at the end of the Charles Martin Hall. After closing the room access, Jack turned on his flashlight and looked around her room, taking everything in. As well as film and posting, Queen Victoria's rampart were plastered with survey of a vast array of case, from animals, to scenery, to simple objects.

walk over to her dressing table, Jack picked up her belated piece and smiled. It was a picture of the two of them, jackass with his arms around Victoria and his chin resting on the top of her head, and Victoria leaning against him with her hand on his dresser. The two of them were slightly turned to the watcher, letting old salt see the looks of loving peace of mind on their faces.

"This might be my ducky,"Jack mused.

"well I couldn't guide us naked, I didn't want my parents to see it."

Jack looked to her and smiled while his manhood hardened. Victoria was standing beside her bed, her back to him and bent grass over as she lit candles on her bedside board. At the peak of foreplay, sea dog raised his flashlight and focused it on her shapely rear.

"You look absolutely breathtaking,"sea dog murmured as she turned back to him, blushing with nervousness."By the way, I brought this."

He reached into his pocket and pulling out a condom. Victoria Falls almost laughed at the motion."Always a man. But before you open it, just severalize me : do you have any VD ? Have you done this before ? Did you catch anything from Kelly ?"

"Don't worry, this is my first fourth dimension as well. And trust me, I got absolutely nothing from Kelly."

"Well I think you know that I have nothing. And since I'm on the pill, I guess we won't need this…"Jenny said, taking the condom and tossing it aside.

After giving Jack a kiss, she turned around and took off her bra and scanty. Completely naked, she walked back to her bed and lied down, trembling from question to toe like a building in an earthquake. Never before had anyone seen her like this, so endanger and explicit. She hadn't been nearly this anxious in her dream, but that was to be expected, as she had only made love to a figment of her vision. But now here she was, about to be truly seen for who she truly was and deflowered. Undressing, manual laborer walked over to the bed and sat down beside her.

She had her shut down hand over her mouthpiece and was blushing to the dot where she was almost as red as her hair. In her intellect, she was imagining Jack examining her closely and judging her on every curve and imperfection. But with his usual smile, Jack reached out and began stroking her cheek while they stared into each early's eyes, their eubstance shining in the light of the candles.

"It's ok, you don't have to find spooky or embarrassed. You're the most beautiful lady friend I've ever seen and I love you. I could never feel anything but endless worship for you,"he whispered, calming her to the point where she moved her hand.

Holding himself over her, Jack lowered his question and they began to kiss, with Victoria trembling every time his rear phallus brushed up against her inner thigh. He leaned to one incline, freeing up the opposing hand and allowing it him to reside it on her flat belly. He moved down, relishing the touch of her peel, so flabby, so smooth. He reached the silky lip of her virgin prime, running his middle and halo digit along the entrance. Finally feeling someone truly touch her, Victoria Falls began to heave heavily with her excitement doubling every bit. Jack worked his magic, running his centre finger between her mouth with his index and ring ringer moving up and down against the entrance and his pollex gyrating against her clit.

‘ Wait… this is just like in my dream,'Victoria thought, present moment before her thoughts were split open by the introduction of Jack's digit.

He continued to move his hand, slowly picking up velocity and eventually inserting his ring finger as well. The feeling of someone inside her made her toes curl up in blissfulness, the feel of being more afford than ever in her life. She had spent so much prison term toying with herself, she knew exactly what her interior felt like, but did it feel the same way to diddly ? Was he satisfied with what he felt ?

‘ This is exactly like my aspiration, every single apparent motion of his script is exactly the same !'

The recognition struck her, but once again, her focal point was ruined as Jack's movements increased in amphetamine and strength, hitting all the rectify points. Her trunk moving like a wave, Queen Victoria tried to stay in control as the sensation of an approaching coming reached her head. She wouldn't survive practically longer ; he was playing her like a hacked videogame. With their backtalk locked and their tongues squeezing the animation out of each former, Victoria's groan was stifled as he brought her to her for the first time orgasm, causing her to arc her dorsum and for her body to twist almost violently. After a instant to let her calm down, Jack held up his fingers in front of her brass, glistening with her juices.

‘ Ok, this is just weird…'capital of Seychelles thought while automatically licking them clean.

"Is something wrong ?"doodly-squat asked, shaking her from her thoughts.

"Oh no, nothing is wrong !"

"Are you sure ?"

"Yeah, I'm just excited."

"All right, then I guess I can take it a step further."

He began kissing her again, but only for a few seconds. After which, he moved from her mouth to her nerve, and from there, ran kisses down her neck. As he sampled her delicate figure, he began fingering her once again, finding her hymen and driving her wild in anticipation. After kissing her collarbone and articulatio humeri various times, he moved down and gave one broad lick up the side of her flop knocker, sending frisson up her spine. He gave another lick up the early side, and then traced his tongue around her nipple. She tasted so delectable, almost like hot breakfast tea with a bit of dough added. Plus the look was unmistakable, consisting of that water balloon feeling with elegantly soft skin. He would have been contentedness to rest his fountainhead there and slumber for the repose of the night, escaping from the freezing winter air outside Victoria's window, his face buried between her bosom, so warm, listening to her heartbeat.

Once he ran his tongue around her teat, he wrapped his lip around it and pulled it gently. Victoria was whimpering in seventh heaven as he lovingly worked his finger inside her and sucked on her tit, moving between them and giving them each an copious sum of money of dedicated attention.

Once he had enough, he moved down again, running his tongue between her knocker and then down her categorical stomach. Reaching out, Victoria grasped her bed sheet and bit down on her pillow, knowing that she would take it to keep her moan of euphory from being heard. His principal between her pegleg, jak removed his fingers from her soaking dent and licked her juices off his hand.

"My God, you are so delicious."

Working his finger's breadth back in, he continued to hasten her before bringing the lips of his mouth and the lips of her cunt together and working his lingua like it was a lasso. The feeling was nifty than Victoria had ever anticipated, and she had to bite down hard on the pillow to preserve from voicing her joy. Her pussy was so delicious that Jack was going down on her like it held the antidote to a poison in his nervure. He was working her with a mix of penetrating strength and loving gentleness, as if trying to hold her flavour good physically and emotionally. Still working his fingers in her, he used the intromission to open her up a little more and let his tongue delve deeper. He wanted to run his tongue along every single cm of her sweet cunt.

"seaman, I'm cumming !"

With a wordless reply, Jack doubled his effort, stirring her interior with his tongue like he was making mashed potatoes. At the same time, he was toying with her clitoris, pulling on it with his lips and sweeping it with his tongue. After only a few irregular, she clamped her legs around his pass with decent enduringness to piss him dizzy and satiate his mouth with her delectable wetness. Only after her euphoric writhing ended did Jack finally pull away and catch his breath.

"That was, without a doubt, the cracking orgasm I've ever had,"Victoria Falls panted.


tar on the soh of his animal foot, her Virgo slit just an inch from his erecting."Don't worry, I've got a lot more in store for you."

"Hold on, do you think we could pillow for a minute ?"

"Oh, of course."

Several seconds passed in which the two lovers were silent, instead letting their breathing do the talking. But finally, Jack reached out and cupped her cheek."You look so beautiful properly now."

"Really ?"

"Yeah, you look energized and happy. It's like every cell in your body has just woken up and is going stir-crazy. You look absolutely radiant."

Victoria was momentarily speechless, completely overwhelmed with emotions."I love you, gob. It's been so short a time, but I love you with all my affection. I'm ready, Jack. I give myself to you ; take care, body, and soul."

"Yes, my honey, sweet Victoria."

Wrapping his mitt around his erect pecker and aiming it, seafarer leaned forward and prodded the ingress with the tip. In her thinker, Victoria compared the current virtuoso with the one in her dream and realized that they were exactly the like. But she didn't care, she wanted to make him her virginity so badly that she couldn't think straight.

"If at any present moment you feel uncomfortable, secern me and I will finish. I want you to feel expert, Victoria. I want this to be pleasurable for you."

"It's alright, any pain that I have to deal with is worth it a thousand times over. Please, engage me, Jack."

Sitting up and holding her by the hips, seafarer slowly pushed his humanness inside her virgin cunt. Closing her eyes, Queen Victoria breathed deeply as that familiar filling sensation came rushing back, just like in her dream. She felt like a balloon being filled with hot air, again being reminded how tight she was in this context of use. Jack too was shaking, relishing the feelings of her flaccid wet sleeve as he slowly delved deeply and deeper into her. Quickly he met up with her hymen and stopped. Taking a oceanic abyss intimation, he looked down into capital of Seychelles's beautiful blue eyes and neither of them had to say a 1 word. With a simple nod, sea dog pushed forward, rupturing her hymen and deflowering her. Victoria's head rolled back and she became breathless, ineffective to describe the feeling overtaking her. It felt like her soulfulness was dripping out of her like blood through her ripped Hymen, but in exchange, diddly's person was pouring into hers from their mesh bodies.

Sitting on his articulatio talocruralis, squat pushed farther in, working his way into the uttermost corners of her interior. Victoria Falls held onto the bed for dear life, not feeling pain or discomfort, but nameless cristal. Buried in all the way to the base, Jack slowly pulled out of her, letting her crimson pedigree, the Lapp shade as her hairsbreadth, catch up with the lighting of the candle. Retaining his sitting bearing, manual laborer began entering her and then pulling out, taking his time to loosen her up and let the two of them get accustomed.

"Jack, I love you,"Victoria whispered as seaman began to take up a steady rhythm.

"I love you too,"he replied, picking up speed.

Moving with surprising speeding and enduringness, Jack began fucking her like a champ, already filling the room with the sound of clapping flesh and Queen Victoria's suppressed moans. As he thrust into her as quickly as he did powerfully, Victoria Falls's D-cup breast bounced and rolled wildly like a pair of water balloons. Her pussy felt amazing beyond words, gob had to bite his lip to keep from cumming then and there as her soft wet insides massaged his cock. Queen Victoria was in the same state, barely able to speak as her buff slammed her Interior Department with his powerful cock.

"Jack, harder !"

aegir to oblige, he set himself up on his mitt and knees. Jack began thrusting down into her from a deeper angle. Recognizing the spot from her ambition, Victoria raised her lower body and wrapped her wooden leg around his shank. With Jack driving down into her, Victoria reached up and placed her hands on manual laborer's cheeks, looking into his eyes while they each panted from the exertion. Using this new position, Jack increased his speed and power, driving down into her like a jackhammer.

capital of Seychelles could no longer speak ; the adept was too overpowering for her to even form words. The bed was practically bouncing on its framing with each poking. Even with his skinny build, he was much stronger than he looked. diddly was speechless as well, not wanting to expend any brainpower that could be used to take account the flavor of Queen Victoria's naked body against his. They were practically wrapped around each other like two chains of tangled Christmas ignitor, and holding her unclothed form felt like sitting in a hot tub.

"Victoria ?"diddly panted.

"Yeah ?"

"My arm are killing me,"he said, causing her to burst into laughter.

"All right, let's switch."

Changing positions, sea dog sat back on the soles of his feet andVictoria rolled onto her English with one leg underneath Jack-tar and the other up across his chest of drawers and resting on his shoulder. Kissing her metrical unit, Jack continued to slam her until his self-control began to waver, giving her two Thomas More orgasms.

"Victoria, I'm about to cum."

"It's ok infant, I want you to do it in me. Fill me up with your sperm."

Quick to obey, tar looked up and gave one loud grunt while fucking her at top speed, followed by several jet-propelled plane of semen shot up into her womb. Literally drained, Jack fell back with his body as gimp as a ragdoll's.

"That was amazing, easily the greatest experience of my life,"capital of Seychelles panted.

"good, I'm gladiola. I enjoyed it too."

Smiling, Victoria lifted up her blanket and pulled them over herself."Come on, climb in. I know you said that you prefer to sit and meditate instead of sleep, but humor me. I'll set my consternation so that you can make your escape before my parents wake up. I really want to kip with you."

Jack gave a piano laughter."That does indeed sound inviting."

As Victoria set her consternation to go off in a few hours and blew out her candles, jack moved underneath the blankets and lied down beside her. Smiling, Victoria pressed her spinal column against his chest and Jack wrapped his arm around her boney waist, breathing in her sweetly flowery scent and basking in the radiating heat of her defenseless body.

"I love you, diddlyshit,"Victoria murmured one last time.

"I love you too,"he replied before falling asleep.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Victoria woke up just before 4 am, dizzy and mentally scrambled in her iniquity bedroom. The alarm had yet to go off, but the bed felt empty, and she could assert it had been Jack's voice that had woken up. Looking over, she saw him sitting at the edge of the bed with his cell phone in hand.

"diddlyshit, is something wrong ?"

"I just got a song from my dad. He's not glad about me sneaking out,"he said without looking back.

"But how did he find out ?"

"Because he was looking for me. My family just got a phone call from the law. About a mile from my home, my mom got into a car fortuity with a inebriate driver. She didn't make it."




Chapter 5



diddly-squat stepped into his living room, where his begetter was crying on the couch. Victoria was standing in the succeeding way, trying to think of something to say when jack returned.

"So is it true ?"

"Yes, she died on impact. From the tyre mark on the road, the early number one wood had definitely been swerving and the flavor of spirits was clear. To think, this happens right before your birthday…"

"It doesn't affair when it happened, the pain is all the Sami. We should not dread or loathe the future, but be grateful for our past tense. Just because mom is gone now does not lessen how happy she made us before. It is upright to escape someone and palpate pain at their loss, it shows how practically they meant to us and how much we cared about them. But never should we feel like our lives are empty without them, because we will always have the metre we spent together in our memories, our erotic love for them, and the knowledge that they never truly left us. Don't trouble about me, while I shall mourn from now and even afterwards, I should not dread the 21st. Goodnight, Dad."

Jack walked out of the room and moved silently past Victoria, but as she reached out to him, he ignored her and began climbing up the stairs. She followed him to his elbow room, closing the door behind her. doodly-squat stood in the midriff of the elbow room, not saying anything or even moving. Victoria looked around, noting the details of his very Spartan sleeping accommodation. True to his wrangle, there was no bed, only a met on the floor with a depression worn in and some pillows. Except for his desk and bureau, the only real furniture was his bookshelf, filled with CDs, cassette tapes, and even platter. Jack turned to her, his grinning returned but weakened with sadness.

"This is the commencement meter I have experienced what citizenry call loss. I must admit, I didn't think it would be this potent. I wonder if even the most irradiate monk is saddened by the loss of a lie with one."

Rushing forward, Victoria wrapped her arms around mariner's cervix and held him tightly."Jack, I am so regretful, I don't even roll in the hay what to say. I wish there was something I could say, something I could do, just something to pass water you palpate better. I know you're pain, I know how it feels to fall back family, but I don't know what it's like to fall back a mom. I'm good-for-naught doodly-squat, I'm so sorry for your loss."

"Thank you, Victoria Falls. I'm lucky to suffer you."

"What can I do for you to do you feel better ? Do you want me to contribute you outer space ? To stay with you ? To comfort you ? I'll do anything you ask, I'll do anything I can to lessen your pain."

Instead of answering, Jack walked past her to his CD musician and inserted a platter of subservient medicine. As the piano flap eminence of the flute glass moved through the way like a listing butterfly, Jack moved to the turning point of the room where he meditated and sat down.

"volition you sit with me ?"

"Of course,"she answered, sitting down on one of the pillows in front of him and holding his hands.

Jack closed his heart and became still, mediating with Victoria just watching him, clutching his manpower. make unnecessary for the two devotee'ventilation, the blue-blooded euphony was the only sound in the room, but as the tertiary song faded out, Victoria's back began to get sore.

"Are you uncomfortable ?"labourer asked without opening his eyes.

"Oh, no, I'm fine."

"It's all rightfulness, do whatever you like to make yourself well-situated. I don't want you to be with me at your expense. I don't want you to be sore to make me happy."

Jack then opened his heart in slight surprise as capital of Seychelles lied down in front of him with her head in his lap.

"William Tell me if you get uncomfortable, I'll motion or do anything you want to reach you happy,"she murmured.

"Thank you, Victoria. I'm blessed to possess you in my life,"he replied with a minuscule smile while he stroked her long orange red hair.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"Kelly, President Tyler, I didn't expect you to come,"Jack said, climbing out of his dad's car and stepping onto the parking lot beside the local church.

Wearing a blackened dress, Victoria climbed out of the vertebral column seat."I told Princess Grace of Monaco about your mom and I guess she told Tyler. I'm sorry, mariner, I should have asked you before telling her."

"No, I'm gladiola they came, just like I'm glad you came."

"Jack, I'm so regretful about your mom. I can't imagine how hard this is for you,"Eugene Curran Kelly said. Like Queen Victoria, she was wearing a Joseph Black wearing apparel for the funeral.

"We should get inside, everyone is waiting for us,"Jack's dad said, getting out of the car.

Stepping forward, John Tyler held out his paw."Mr. Robert Owen, I'm sorry about your wife. If she's anything like old salt, she must have been a very sort and smart woman."

With a sad smile, Harold shook the immature man's manus and thanked him.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

In the main entrance hall of the church, a line of friends and family slowly moved past the capable casket of diddley's mother. She had been placed in a black dress and any scratches or injuries from the car crash had been hidden with make-up by the coroner. In the backcloth, Victoria, Ellie, and Tyler stood, wanting to persist out of the way while everyone mourned.

Under their watch, jak came up to the coffin and placed his hand on his mom's cold-blooded shoulder joint."Thank you for everything, especially for letting me have known you."

The words spoken, he walked over to his friends.

"I know how you feel, manual laborer, I lost my sister five age ago and it completely wrecked my life history. Only recently have I been able to come to terms with it and I still haven't been able-bodied to forgive myself for her death, but meeting you has been a lot of help,"said Tyler.

"The pain of losing a loved one is the Same for everyone. While the role that person might have played or the relationship they were in may be different, as long as people love someone, they will all mourn him or her the same way and with the Lapp volume. Thank you."

"I may have not known your mom for very long, but each day I talked to her, I could see and apprize the kind of person she was. She was a wonderful woman."Victoria said softly.

"Thank you, that means a lot to me."

"I don't know what to say that will assist, other than I am regretful for your loss. All I can really do is promise you that I will help you in any way that I can."

"Thank you, I appreciate it."

Taking a deep breath, old salt's father approached them."We should get our bum, the ceremonial occasion is about to start."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Jack's father stood at the stump, with Laurie's jewel casket behind him."Laurie was my wife, the mother of my son, and the passion of my life. She was variety to everyone, a gentle soul, and the odoriferous fille you could ever adjoin. I met her when we attended USM, and from the moment I saw her, I knew I loved her. She became my visible radiation, my dream, and my hope for the future. I considered every day that we were together a thanksgiving, and the day we married to be the felicitous day of my life-time. We built a place together, joined our two futurity into one, and raised a son that quickly became the most amaze and impudent man I had ever met, even as a child. The night she died, Jack said that while she may be gone, we will never suffer the sentence we had together. For that, I am truly grateful, grateful to Laurie for giving me the expectant twenty years of my life, and grateful to our son, who will never let me devalue my store of her,"he said, wiping away tears.

He left the podium to return to his seat, and while everyone clapped, capital of Seychelles squeezed labourer's hand.

The priest then stepped forward and announced,"Laurie's son, gob Owen, would now like to speak."

With a stoic spirit on his face, Jack stood up and made his way down the aisle to give his own speech. Standing behind the rostrum, he took a deep breathing spell and looked out over the bunch with his usual enlightened smile.

"Of all the things I am grateful for, from raising me, loving me, and sheltering me, what I value most from my female parent is that I knew her. It is not material self-command that make us happy, but the trammel we share and the people in our spirit. mankind have such a short lifespan, we are barely a flash of lightning compared to the eons that have passed for the aging creation. We live for less than a hundred geezerhood, but we are dead for the sleep of timeless existence. You could almost say that living things are merely organisms that have not passed on yet.

But if that is honest, then doesn't the same mentation work in reverse ? In the true, no one is truly put up and no one truly dies, for the issue and energy that makes us all has existed and will survive for all of timeless existence. My personal philosophy is that one-half of realism is how it is interpreted, so while many multitude here may affect my female parent as having passed on, I see her as still existing, even if it's in a way that I can't quite horse sense. While she may not be animated in the traditional common sense, she has existed since the beginning of meter and will exist until time's end.

The physical structure we all hugged and were hugged by was and is still made of atoms crafted in the virtuoso themselves, the kindness and warmth we all knew, fueled by neural beat and then released back into the universe as pure energy. We may all feel like we have lost her, like there is a gob in our gist that can never be filled, but she has only truly left us if that is how we see her. Even if her body has been returned to the matter from which she was made, I know she exists and will always exist. The energy that powered her form heart and made her the individual we all knew and loved, even if it has been scattered across the universe in an undetectable contour, still exists and is still as potent as it always was.

While she may be in a form that our human pot can not perceive, she will always be with us, just as she always has. You see her death as untimely, but I see it has the former metamorphosis of someone we loved turning back into a part of the universe around us. I know this sounds like just a science lecture, but I'm hoping that everyone can empathize and will substantiate that even if someone dies, whether it be our fault or an upshot destined by time itself, they will always be, they are nothing lupus erythematosus than what they were when they were alive, even if we can't see them that way. Even if my mother is perfectly, I am well-chosen, for I know it only means that she has taken a new soma and is still with me. To everyone here, I hope that the next time someone you love toss on, you realize that they are only gone if you perceive them to be, and in Sojourner Truth, they are never any to a lesser extent of a parting of your life. Thank you."

His Good Book drew thunderous hand clapping, and as he returned to his seat, everyone reached out to pat him on the rear. In his butt, Tyler had his boldness in his hands and was crying rip of both mourning and joy. This was the net step, this was what he needed to listen to finally be at peace. Jack, both in his aspiration and reality, had taught him the true import of his baby's death. The pain she felt was only a sensing, what happened wasn't his fault, and even if he could no longer touch or talk to his sister, she still existed and would always be with him. He could finally move on and be at peace.

Jack took his bottom beside Victoria and she clung to his arm.

"That was beautiful old salt, that was so beautiful. I guess your dad and I have something in common, in that you're the most amazing and wisest man we've ever met."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

It was late into the Night, and Jack and Victoria were sitting in the Owen living elbow room. squat's father had long since gone to bed, and now the two adolescent were just talking and sharing computer memory while drinking from steaming cupful of hot chocolate. Crackling in the brick open fireplace, a small inferno stubbornly clung to animation and warmed the room. In the background, polish idle words played, a sad line to fit the mode of the day. The room access to the living room were closed, ensuring that they had complete and totality privacy.

"My mom used to state me that she believed in reincarnation, simply because she thought I was an edify monastic reborn."

"It's hard to suppose even you being so smart while only a petty kid. I'm surprised she didn't think you were an alien."

"For all we know, she might have. I guess we'll never be sure,"jackass said with a sad smile.

"gob, have you cried yet ?"Victoria asked hesitantly.

"No, I see no penury to. Shedding charge achieves zip but catharsis, but if one can contact that state without crying, then tears become disused. I have come to terms with the loss, I don't need to cry."

Victoria placed her delicate handwriting on his cheek."Jack, it's all right to be vulnerable. You don't have to act like you aren't hurting,"

"I do feel it, I do drop her. But my words from today still hold their meaning. She is not gone, she has only become something else, and even if she has taken a strain that my senses can not detect, I know that she still exists, and that is enough o relieve oneself me well-chosen. Though I would by lying if I said that I wouldn't prefer her original form."

"I love you diddlysquat, and that is why it brings me heartache to see you in pain in the neck. But you know, it's kind of nice seeing you this way. It's prissy to finally see you being a little bit vulnerable, it makes me require to take you and take maintenance of you. I want to be able to gain you happy, and I finally have the hazard to do that, even if it means taking the painful sensation away from a offend heart."

"You do produce me happy. For even with all the cognition I've acquired about humankind, it is only when I'm with you that I truly feel like I understand them. On my low gear day back, I told you that I loved everyone and everything, including you, but now I love you more than anything else."

"Jack, delight just answer me this one thing : do you feel any pain in the ass or lugubriousness right now after what happened today ?"

"Yes, I do."

With a sad but tender grin, capital of Seychelles stood up and removed her dress, wearing null but her underwear. Reaching back, she released the clench and let her bra skid away, exposing her young firm breasts. Seductively shaking her hips from side to side, she pulled her thong down her long smooth legs and let them drop down to the floor. Moving back onto the couch, she straddled Jack's lap, instantly feeling him become laborious with arousal.

"Then let me avail you feel better. Let me comfort you. Use me however you want to puddle yourself happy, ask me to do something and I will obey,"she said softly, pressing her forehead against his. She then leaned back as jackass raised his mitt and placed them on the English of her angelic font, staring into her brilliantly blue sapphire eyes.

"Please, just rest here with me."

"Of track,"she said before they began to kiss.

While their back talk joined and separated over and over again, Jack began unbuttoning his garb shirt without a unmarried milk shake or tremor. As the endure release became unfastened and Jack began pulling the shirt off his articulatio humeri, capital of Seychelles quickly moved off him so that he could stand up and completely undress. Turning back around, Jack gazed upon capital of Seychelles and smiled. She was bent over the arm of the lounge, shaping her shapely ass at him seductively with a coy smile on her face.

"Use me however you want to stool yourself happy."

Smiling, jak got down on one knee on the floor and ran his tongue up her closely youth ass, drawing chill of arousal from Victoria. Over and over again, he kissed her deliciously soft form, massaging it with his workforce and sampling her unique essence with his tongue. After less than half a minute, jackstones spread her buttock and flitted his tongue between the sass of her pussy.

"Oh God, Jack, that feels so good,"Victoria blushingly whimpered while he worked both his knife and riffle inside her.

"I could say the same for you, your delectable flavor is rank euphoric. It tastes like I'm sampling your very soul, and it is truly toothsome,"he replied before doubling his efforts, using his tongue and his sassing to excite every nerve and send waves of bliss rushing through her body.

‘ Damn, how is he so skillful at this ? !'capital of Seychelles wondered.

With each minute that passed by, Victoria Falls's self-control plummeted further and further and she began losing the ability to differentiate the unlike waving of pleasure pumping through her vein. All she knew was that she wanted more.

"Please, please put it in me. You're driving me so dotty that I can't subscribe to it any longer,"she moaned once he finally pulled away, leaving her tantalizingly close to a mind-shattering climax.

"I thought this was supposed to be for me,"jack teased, standing up behind and running his paw across her grave hindquarters.

Queen Victoria laughed softly."You're correctly, sorry for being selfish."

"You asked me to do anything that would construct me happy, but to make you well-chosen is the only way I can be,"he said, leaning over and running kisses up her back.

Standing up straight, Jack made sure he had a sound custody on her pelvis and slowly entered her pussycat. Feeling herself getting mounted, capital of Seychelles gave a soft moan as Jack penetrated her at an slant she had not yet experienced. mariner worked himself all the way inside of her, licking his rim at the unspeakable feeling of her Department of the Interior, so soft, warm, and wet. It was gross heaven for his cock, squeezing and trembling against it with each fluttering beat of her heart. Holding onto her, knave pulled out until only the brain was inside her, then pushed himself back in with a hearty clap of her ass against his lap.

Groaning from the star of Jack's manhood driving deep into her, Queen Victoria held onto the frame as he began to pull back out. Building a rhythm, labourer moved back and forward inside of her, increasing in velocity and powerfulness with each shove. Under the superpower of his jab, Queen Victoria was left chewing on the couch, terrified of her moans leaving the way. In less than a hour, diddlysquat was basically hammering away at her with almost animalistic amphetamine, slamming the deepest corner of her slit and creating a loud continuous clapping strait of Victoria Falls's flesh against his. Her body felt so good and she looked so beautiful, he wanted to keep back fucking her forever.

Victoria Falls was in sodding ecstasy, unable to account the belief of getting penetrated over again with such mogul and swiftness. Jack was basically riding her like his life depended on it and was fucking her at tier of volume just short of beastly, and Victoria loved all of it. He was at the everlasting speeding for her and it was driving her wild. No matter how animalistic or inhuman his beat became, she could always feel love within his movements. Pushing herself up onto her elbow, she rocked back and forth with each sweep from Jack, moaning into the crook of her arm and watching as her C-cup tit bounced and jiggled wildly.

"Jack, don't cum inside of me, I have an idea. Lie down."

"All right,"he grunted, coming to a stop and gently pulling out of her.

He lied down on the couch and she kneeled over him, almost sitting on his leg. Bending over, she wrapped her fingers around his cock and began stroking it next to her boldness, which was practically glowing with love.

"I've never done this before and I'm nervous, but I love you too much to not try and fulfil you in every way. I doubt I'm as good as Kelly, but let's see what I can do."

retention her head over his erect cock, Victoria nervously hesitated for a here and now before sticking out her natural language and licking the tip. gob shivered from the sensual touch and released a soft groan as she licked it again, this fourth dimension wrapping her tongue around the straits and slathering it. Stroking the shaft and beginning to feel sure-footed, she took the head in her back talk, working it with her lips while tickling the tip with her clapper. Listening to Jack and feeling him excite with each front she made, Queen Victoria began to feel lordly in her piece of work and took his cock deeper in her rima oris, bringing it in as far as she could without gaging.

Moving her drumhead incline to side, she used her cheeks to knead the head while wrapping her glossa around the shaft. Now knowing what she was doing, she began bobbing her head up and down, sucking his cock with horny ebullience. While she worked, Jack gently and lovingly stroked her tomentum with his usual calm grin. As time passed, Victoria Falls becoming Sir Thomas More and more creative as she worked, using every single corner of her oral cavity, playfully biting down ever so softly, or she would even stop blowing him and knead his putz between her tit. Through her efforts, Jack could feel his body reaching its limit.

"Victoria, turn around. I want us to finish at the same time."

Getting up, Victoria turned herself around and lowered herself onto him, letting him gorge himself on her Henry Sweet slit while she continued to suck him off. Their bodies pressed together like yin and yang, Victoria and manual laborer worked tirelessly to pleasure each former, and quickly, their attempt took affect. The two lover began to shake as their torso were filled with trembling warmth, both reading each other and the signboard in their own body. Sensing Victoria about to cum, Jack sent his tongue and lips as far into her pussy as possible and licked her out almost aggressively, while Victoria, sensing Jack's approaching orgasm, took his total cock in her oral cavity kept her mind still, deep-throating him.

Finally, the two lovers both came, with Victoria splashing old salt with her euphoric juice and Jack firing jet after jet of semen into her throat while leaving her mouth light. Gasping for air, the teenager separated and lied incline by side, looking up at the ceiling.

"That was wonderful,"Victoria purred, turning back around and curling up next to Jack with her arm across his chest.

"That was, give thanks you."

"Was I better than Grace Patricia Kelly ? Be honest."

"In terms of skill, her experience clearly gives her an advantage. But when I was with her, I didn't flavour anything, because there were no feeling between us. She actually had to recite me to cum because she couldn't get me to. But with you, I could truly finger your feelings for me, and that was what made it so hard to keep my body under mastery. Although, now that I think about it, she and I were out in the freezing low temperature, so some spiritlessness was to be expected. I guess—"

"Oh shut up !"she laughed while playfully smacking him.

"Sorry. By the way, my dad and I have to get out tomorrow. We have some relatives down in American capital DC that weren't in good plenty health to move around, so the to the lowest degree we can do is fly down and visit them."

"How long will you be gone ?"

"Don't worry, just a couple Clarence Day or so. We'll hitch in New House of York on the way, spend the night in DC, fly back to New House of York, and then be back in the evening."

"All right, I just wonder if I'll be able to go that long without you."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"I finally understand, I can finally see my sister's death for what it really was,"Tyler said, standing in his dreamscape, facing doodly-squat. But unlike all the time before, the black backdrop had been replaced with an encompassing scrapbook of old storage, some playacting like TV snip and others frozen in metre like photographs.

"And what was it ?"

"All this time, I thought pain was something rattling, something that can be physically measured. But really, it is a perception and a response to an event. What those people did to her wasn't what hurt her, it was how she perceived it and gave it meaning that caused the real harm. She wasn't capable to choose what happened to her, she didn't get to choose to be raped, but the bother she felt was an illusion brought on by mixer mark and social meaning. In reality, any act could have caused the Saame damage as what she went through, but she had been shaped by society to consider what happened to her in that way.

I blamed myself for her expiry because I needed to finger like I could have done something. I needed to finger like even for a moment, even if it involved shameful failure, I had superpower. I needed to feel like I had a choice. But really, everything is predetermined by time. What happened was unavoidable ; it was the solvent of all the variables lining up at their destined points. Whatever happens is the alone possible route as dictated by time and the variable star. There is no breaker point considering the past times or replacement futures since there can be only one present. Every decisiveness I make has already been made, but that decision can only be made if I have the capability to make it, since each effect needs a fitting reason. Everything I do is predetermined by destiny, but that makes my decisions and choices no to a lesser extent real.

I've always thought that it was because of my helplessness that my Sister was robbed of her life, but you taught me that even if I can't see or find out her, she is no lupus erythematosus real than when she was live. The mote that made her organic structure will exist for all eternity along with mine, and the energy that powered her brain and made her who she was has been dispersed back out into the universe, returning to what it once was. Else had existed since the beginning of meter and will exist with me for all timelessness, it was only the cast that I projected onto her that was lost. And even if I can not touch her or speak to her, the store I have of her will always be real number and the effect she has had on me and how she has shaped me into the someone I am will always exist.

My sister still exists in another variety, her pain was only an illusion, and there is no reason to sense rap for anything unless I am meant to as dictated by time."

He breathed a sigh of relief as years of pain and stress were finally released.

"But just to be sure…"Jack said before walking over and delivering a solid biff straight to Tyler's nose, breaking it and causing blood to trickle out.

John Tyler staggered back but didn't touch his nose or make a sound.

"Did that hurt ?"

"Very."

"But do you take care that it hurts ?"

"No, I don't."

"Congratulations, President Tyler, you have learned to shed the weights of your knowingness and you are now ready to uncover the ego. However, this is not a lesson that can be given in a dream, it is something I must teach you in real life."

"hold, what are you talking about ?"
"I'm leaving on a trip, and in three 24-hour interval, I shall instruct you, Kelly, and Victoria how to find your self. I'm certain that they are close to reaching the Sami tier of catharsis as you."

"hold, you mean this is actual ? !"

"Of course ! It's like I told you, just because this is just a dream or all in your intellect, does that pee it any less real ?"

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"I think I've finally figured it out, at east part of it anyways,"said Kelly.

"Oh ? Please explain,"Jack asked.

lying back on the invisible floor of her dreamscape, Kelly looked up into the infinite duskiness."The ego is the root of everything, it is our opinions, our thinking, our emotions, our true self-regard, the sum of our share, and the pure root of who we are. But the Superego is how we display ourselves, how we make ourselves front in order to try and see to it how we are perceived. In essence, the Superego is how we react to hoi polloi and what we become to make water them like us and also in reaction to who they are. The Superego is basically the silver screen that everyone projects their sensing of somebody onto. My identity operator is shaped by my reaction to how hoi polloi perceive me, and I change myself so that citizenry can either like me or hate me, and in their response to how I portray myself, I too react and rearrange who I am according to their perceptual experience. The Superego is shaped by the people around us and how they see us and wee see them. If you live your unhurt life without ever encountering another person, your Superego is shaped by their absence."

"So who are you ?"

"I am Kelly Betsy Ross, friend of diddly Owen, Victoria Ellie, and John Tyler Deck. I like idle words music and my favorite things to watch are appearance on Animal satellite. I hate gym class, judgmental hoi polloi, misogynistic politicians, and being alone. When I grow up, I want to be a bartender and own a Night club."

She finally knew, she finally knew who she was.

"Congratulations, you're a third of the way to finding your ego. Your next pace is to uncover why you distanced yourself from your Superego and why you subconsciously hid your identity from yourself. I strongly believe that there is a cause why it was so backbreaking for you to figure out who you are, and that reason ties into one of the fundamental vista of human nature. If you can figure out what that barrier is that blocked you off from your identity, then it is a unbowed crack to the Self."

Lying on her back, Kelly looked over to Jack and smiled."No one has ever believed in me before, no one has ever helped me this much. Thank you, Jack, thank you for everything."





Chapter 6



BANG ! The gunshot rang out to the sound of the flight concomitant's cry of pain as the bullet pierced her shoulder.

"Turn this carpenter's plane around or I'm going to start killing passengers !"the man yelled, waving his gun at anyone who made the slender of movement.

The screeching of terrified men and womanhood filled the cabin as people realized that the plane had just been hijacked. While one of the passenger tried to help the wound trajectory attended, the highwayman banged his gun against the locked cockpit door and repeated the order. Regardless of their fright, many rider began recording the event with their phones, not knowing what else to do. Next to his Padre, diddly sat calmly in his seat, calculating his next move.

He wasn't smiling, but he looked immune to the prospect of fear. It had taken him to a lesser extent than a instant to see it out : this was the tax return flight from New York to Portland and the hijacker had picked it for a self-annihilation bombing attack against New York. They were barely in the first stage of the flight of steps, but that made it the beneficial time for the terrorist to make his move, because it meant that the planer was still loaded with fuel and would cause more impairment when it crashed.
Taking a deep breathing time, Jack stood up and stepped out into the aisle.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Victoria was sitting in her living room with her parents, listening to the evening news. She was watching the clock, counting down the minutes until Jack's plane would shoot down. He had only been gone for two days, but it felt like an timeless existence. She couldn't time lag to see him again. On the TV, the ongoing storey on the financial cliff was interrupted by a sudden announcement from Brian William Carlos Williams, who was speaking in a very serious and nervous look. This wasn't good.

"Ladies and gentlemen, we're receiving Bible that a planer traveling from New York to Portland has just been hijacked by a terrorist."

Victoria Falls's parents nearly jumped from their arse while Victoria Falls sat petrified, unable to breathe or move and feeling like her heart had just dropped right into her stomach. It couldn't be truthful, it couldn't be… Of all matter to befall, a terrorist hijacks a planing machine and takes the man she loved hostage ? Was he about to suit one of the first casualties in the next 9/11 ? Was she going to lose the only man she had every truly loved and been close to ?

"We are now going to toy for you a transcription of the terrorist's need through the carpenter's plane's receiving set. I should warn you, this might be vivid,"said the newsworthiness anchor before the screen became dark.

"My name is Gerard Ali Lenaen, retainer of the mighty Allah ! For too long, the epicurean Carry Nation of U.S. has bullied the public and defecated on the faith of others ! They have raped the homeland of my Muslim crony and forced innocent mass out of their homes to build the Zionist empire ! Enough is decent ! It is time for United States to get wind that it doesn't convention the world and that it can't do whatever it wants ! It is time for this country of infidels to be put in its place !"the Middle Eastern man shouted into the radio before the bank line went dumb.

The cover went back to Brian Thomas Lanier Williams, who was listening to his earpiece."Wait, we're now getting a springy provender of the panorama, via cellphone. Ladies and gentlemen, we shall disperse this for as long as we can and preserve the passengers on that planing machine in our philia and prayers."

The screen once again changed, this sentence showing a trembling low-quality scene of the cabin of the plane. The tip of view was from just past the center of the cabin, showing the terrorist standing near the cockpit and a teenage boy in the aisle, completely lull, even with a pistol pointed at him. The man looked to be in his late thirties with an unshaven expression and non-white complexion, while the teenager looked wan with blond hair.

"Jack…"Victoria Falls whispered with bust rolling down her face.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"Gerard Ali Lenaen, my name is Jack Owen, and it is a pleasure to get together you. While the circumstances may not be right for a favorable chat, I'm hoping that you and I can blab out. I promise, I mean you no harm,"squat said with his usual carefree smile.

"No ! No talking ! Get back in your seat or you'll die !"

"I would suppose that you would want to verbalize. After all, I can't imagine this being anything but a self-annihilation onslaught, and you can't require me to believe that you are so willing to go to your grave accent without at least voicing your business concern and making sure that you are completely understood. As you can see, this bit is being recorded and streamed through many cell phones, don't you want to use this opportunity to spread your message as clearly as you can ? Use this prospect to cook sure the world understands your logical thinking, what drives you."

"This is your net warning, boy ! Sit down or I will shoot !"

"So you won't solidify your beliefs for the macrocosm or defecate sure that your subject matter is clear, and neither will you indulge my abase request for a conversation. pardon my nerve, but it seems to me like you are having doubts about what you are doing. The early passengers have been moving quite a lot since you made your declaration, and you know as well as I do that they are waiting for their probability to try and apprehend you.

However, instead of focusing your attention on the mortal who look like they could cause the most difficulty, you are keeping your gun pointed at me, with the solely trend coming from the vibration of your hand. From this, I can assure that you are more afraid of my Word of God than you are of the vehement actions of the other passengers.

You would rather face up an onslaught, immurement, or even destruction, instead of taking an in-depth expression at your motives through talking. You are afraid that you will be convinced to turn back what you are doing, to be told that you are wrong for making this choice, and will see that you made a error.

You feel like my words can bring down far more damage than any heroic attempt to lead your arm or stamp down you. I assure you that I have no intention of making any vehement human activity against you, and I ask that my fellow rider please throw off on any attempt to exchange the situation, at least so that you and I can have an uninterrupted conversation.

If you truly are afraid of my words, then doesn't that mean value you should talk to me ? Won't facing me capitulum on strengthen your own article of faith ? You have nix to revere from a dewy-eyed conversation unless you let it affect you."

His nerve contorting in anger, Gerard pulled the trigger, shooting doodly-squat in the decently side of the breast. In her living room, Victoria Falls tearfully screamed squat's name, refusing to conceive what she had just seen. Harold Owen was in the same country, about to belt along over to Jack's incline before his son stopped him. Staggering back but staying on his understructure, seafarer took several Rider Haggard breathing place while covering the wound in his bureau. Already, blood was pouring from his front and back, as well as dripping from his mouth, but regardless, he stayed standing and maintained his smile.

"fountainhead, that's one experience that I certainly wouldn't mind not repeating,"he chuckled, as if without a care in the universe. Everyone on the planing machine was in awe, ineffectual to believe what had just happened and what was happening now.

"What the fuck are you ? ! Why aren't you utterly ? !"Gerard shouted, shaking so badly that he could barely hold his gun straight.

"Oh, don't trouble, you've definitely inflicted a mortal wound. I'll probably only finale a few more hours if I don't receive medical exam attending. The man physical structure truly is a marvellous institution, and adverse to TV, it is built to resist heavy terms. The chest of drawers especially has been shaped to protect and prolong the living of the organs, so much so, that it often takes several bout directly to the critical organs to kill someone, not like that deadly one-shot putting to death that you always see in the motion-picture show. I admit, that was very painful and it is becoming difficult to breathe, but evolution gave us two lungs, so there is no grounds to just resign and die when one gets damaged. It hurts, but I don't mind."

Everyone on the plane was dumbstruck, unable to conceive what they were hearing and seeing. Who was this kid ? ! By now, almost everyone in the country was watching what was happening, and among them, Victoria, Eugene Curran Kelly, Tyler, and the rest of Jack's champion were almost smiling. This was the jackfruit they knew.

"Now, since you shot me, I think you at least owe me that conversation. I'm rather curious as to how you snuck that small-arm onboard. Clearly you weren't carrying it with you when you got on the planing machine, X-radiation and body scans can detect even non-metallic firearms and weapon. I imagine that the gun was hidden on the plane before your arrival, meaning that either you or a co-conspirator has a job at the aerodrome, working as a janitor or repairman. Was it hidden in the rear ? In the bathroom ? In a closed book compartment ?"

"Under the seat, I work as a janitor,"his opponent reluctantly admitted.

"Ah, they did something like that in The Godfather if I remember correctly, very cunning. Now please, severalise me about yourself. state me why you made this decision,"Jack said before coughing into his arm.

"I was born in Palestine and raised as a tiddler in Gaza for many years, my parents forced out of Israel upon its founding and authorization by the Israelite. Eventually, my menage had to flee to Al-Iraq to escape from the conflict over the Gaza strip. I've been a devout Muslim all my living and taught to believe in the love of Allah, but when my parents were murdered in the bombing of Bagdad by your government, I was forced to take my wife and tike and leave. I tried to forgive USA for killing my mother and Father of the Church, I even moved to the states in the hope that my children could live a wagerer life and escape the furiousness brought on by the war you started.

But after 9/11, U.S. became hell for us. Your hate-filled monsters tormented us mercilessly ! My children were tormented, I lost my job and expend twelvemonth getting turned down by everyone I talked to in the hunt of work, and finally, my wife was murdered, killed in the streets for her organized religion ! We left USA right afterwards and returned to Iraq, only for some faceless US drone to kill my fry in a bombardment maraud ! I couldn't even bury them, for there was goose egg left but blood and gore splattered across the detritus !

This country has taken everything from me ! It's ruined my life ! And yet you selfish Americans look down on my body politic and my people ! What makes you so special ? What gives you the right on to take what you want and destroy the respite ? ! I've had enough of this state, it's time for US to find out the signification of Justice Department and know what it feels like to be victimized !"he shouted with his eyes beginning to snap up.

The cabin was silent as everyone tried to stomach the quarrel. The nuisance in Gerard's vocalisation was more very than anyone had expected or witnessed. They had heard affair like this before, fib like Gerard's on the news and in TV show, but never before had they ever heard one in really spirit. The Same mum shot was taking stead in every TV room, with every viewer just letting Gerard's speech sink in. Even tar had removed his smile, when not even a smoke could construct him.

"Your anger is graspable, however, do you really think this is the best choice ? Do you really think that this will bring justice ?"

"What are you talking about ?"

"Look around you, Gerard, do you really think the people on this trajectory are as shamed as you want them to be ? reckon at the minor cowering with their parents. Do you think they bullied your kidskin, bombed your townspeople, and killed your family ? They didn't, Gerard, everyone here is sinless, and so too are the people in New York who will die if you crash this aeroplane. No sprightliness is equal to another, so do you really think that killing innocent Americans is equalize to killing destitute Iraqi ? If someone killed one of the citizenry you loved, would you get your revenge by killing the first random somebody you saw ? Would that really be jurist ?

And even if this aeroplane was filled with the multitude who were shamed for the botheration in your life, you would be just as bad as them if you go through with this. There would be no justice, because while you may take their lives in vengeance for the liveliness of your home, you are just creating more victims in the form of their loved I. If you were face to face with the man who killed and raped your wife, you might consider it justice to kill him, but can you expect into the tear-filled eyes of that man's loved 1 and severalize them that they must endure the losing of someone they cared about to satisfy your own bloodlust ? Can you tell them that they are not entitled to justice since you are ?

You can not wound person without hurting everyone who cares about them. Even in vengeance, all you do is create more victim who feel the Sami pain as you and are equally entitled to what you call justness. Think of all the mass here ; think of their ally and families, their loved one. Do you think the nuisance that the people who care about them will finger at the news of their deaths is any less legitimize or deserving as the pain in the ass you felt when you lost your phratry ?

Gerard, there is no DoJ here."

He lowered his gun a few inch, but did not designate it away from Jack."You're just trying to stop me because I'm attacking you and your country ! If you weren't here and weren't from America, you wouldn't maintenance, you wouldn't have any interest in this ! No one cares about the people of my area, they only care about the citizenry of theirs !"

"You're wrong, Gerard, I care no more about U.S. than I do Republic of Iraq or Promised Land. state and borders mean nothing to me, because I don't divide the multitude of this world. We are all people of Earth, we portion the same home, the Same emotions, and the same bother. No dividing ocean, product line on a map, different linguistic communication, or separate religion can change the fact that we are all one mass, trying to find happiness and meaning in our lives.

American language, Iraki, Israeli, Muslim, Christian, Atheist… none of them mean anything unless we want them to and they only exist because masses want to dissever each other, but I don't. The land that you come from way zero me, just as the landed estate I come from mean nothing to me, because aren't all from the same world and macrocosm ?

Gerard, you are not an Iraki or a Muslim, and neither am I an American or an atheist. We are both people, shaped by the choices we make and our own perceptual experience of the world. The variance created between people cause war and turmoil ; they are born from our attempt to be different, even at our own disbursement and the expense of others. You and I may induce unlike feeling and different legal opinion, but I know the Truth, and the truth is that you and I are exactly the same.

Now Gerard, you have a once in a lifespan opportunity here, one where you can do far more just than bad. The choice you make right now could modify the intact world."

"What are you talking about ?"he asked, barely able to hold up his gun. It felt so heavy in his helping hand, like it hurt to celebrate it lifted. A part of him was screaming to put it down, but he still couldn't.

"What you said about the boost of discrimination after 9/11 could not be Thomas More true, I too have seen the hate and paranoia that has been born in the wake of those blast. Bigots are targeting free Moslem and blaming them for the crimes of a few extremists, it sickens me. However, progress is slowly being made to rectify the equipment casualty. Each day, the legal age limning of Islam is changing depending on the behavior of its fellow member, but if you go through with this tone-beginning, you will anguish your own people more than you will wound America.

How many important buildings can you destroy with this planing machine ? How many living can you take ? Compare that to the amount of money of hatred that will be created in the aftermath. prejudice and discrimination towards Muslim will skyrocket, the American English citizenry will carry a wound of hatred that will take decade to heal, and their paranoia will spread to the other countries, and they too will mistreat innocent Moslem out of veneration and ignorance. If you go through with this onset, then the people that you are trying to protect will just be victimized by the entire world. Your own masses will be hurt to a greater extent by your action than United States of America."

"Said by someone who doesn't care about Islam,"Gerard cursed, merely trying to mean of a ground to go on his gun raised, even if he consciously didn't recognize the desperation of the act.

"You're faulty again, Gerard, I have corking obedience for the Islamic domain, and that respect has been given to me by history itself. Any competent historian would admire and be in awe of the advance brought Forth by Islamism, especially during the Islamic Golden Age. More so than the Renaissance of EEC, any elucidate era of Asia or the Mediterranean, or even the Industrial Revolution of America, I consider the Islamic Golden Age as easily the richly detail of human civilisation, bringing Forth River the slap-up growth spurt of cognition, art, and social progress in all of history !

If I could move through time, I would travel back to the 10th and 11th hundred and study geometry and betterment mathematics in Córdoba, science and uranology in the House of Wisdom in Bagdad, or philosophy and art in Mecca ! The entire modern world, including the States, was built on the cognition collected and born in the Islamic Golden Age ! Our New domain owes your antecedent everything !

After the Mongol invasion, Islam unfortunately fell from its peak, but now, you have a chance to assist it displace back in the focussing of progression. The greatest stereotype of Islam is that it is a religion of unlearned furiousness, a stereotype that too easily becomes a self-fulfilling divination, but now you can demonstrate everyone untimely. prove the world that a Moslem who was about to pay an act of act of terrorism can see the light and return to being a man of peace ! Show the reality that no religion can be blamed for the choices of its fanatical nonage ! Show the world that the Islamic culture can once again be a shining pharos for humans !"

"It doesn't matter, they'll lock me up as soon as this plane lands,"Gerard admitted, finally giving up.

"But they can't secretiveness you, and they can't veil what has transpired here. Look at all these phones recording our conversation, each one holding the proof that even the most bitter Moslem is ready to forgive and think in peace, just like any Christian, Jew, Hindu, Taoist, atheist, or other person of organized religion. The world is watching, Gerard.

You have basically become the face of the Islamic civilization, and now the globe is watching and waiting to see which direction you turn your religion towards. Through the events of today and your piece of work in the time to come, would-be terrorists will hopefully see that we can hold out in a passive public and that there is another way for Islam to regain the esteem it once possessed, and bigots and racists will realize that we don't need to detest an entire group of masses or an stallion culture for the selection of the few."He then walked over to Gerard and held his deal out to him."What happens now is up to you, Gerard, and I will avail you every step of the way if you need me to."

Instead of replying, Gerard fell to his human knee, sobbing with the side arm pressed against his forehead."I can't give up ! Something has to be done ! My family is dead and I can't live without them ! This is all I have left !"

Wincing with human body blood spurting from his wounding and his respiration further labored, diddly-shit got down on one knee. mobile phone earphone surrounded the two men, all recording the conversation and transmitting it around the mankind. Jack leaned forward and grasped Gerard's shoulders, forcing the relegate man to seem into his middle."They are not gone, Gerard. They are still with you, just as they always have been. I know your infliction, conceive me. Just a few days ago, I attended my mother's funeral. A drunk driver killed her, and my father and I flew down to capital of the United States to jaw my great aunty and uncle. I know what it's like to drop off family, and that is why every word I speak to you here and now is the Truth. Your family has not left you ; they live on in your center, in your memories, and in you. You found a marvelous char to marry and you created a kin, but really, it is your category that created you. Your wife and children shaped you into who you are today, and the influence they had on you will never leave and never change.

Even if you are alone, even if you live to be a hundred geezerhood old, the day will never number when you will look into a mirror and not see a husband and a Padre. Every decision you have made, you made because you know the erotic love of having a family and the pain of losing them. Every choice that you have made could not have been done by anyone who did not know what it was like to raise baby and have a wife, and for the rest of your life, whatever path you choose to walk down will only be possible because of how your crime syndicate made you.

Think, Gerard, you know the pain of losing family, and instead of inflicting that pain on others, you have the hazard to save them from it. All the people on this airplane and all the multitude in New York, you have the chance to spare them the same pain you went through. Ask yourself what has to be done, not as a terrorist, a man of Allah, or a native of the Middle East, but as a father and a husband. You know the determination you have to make."

With a trembling hired man, Gerard handed him the pistol and Jack, in turn, hugged him, letting the former terrorist shed every last pent up tear. laborer looked up to one of the flight attendants."Can you please tell the Captain to continue the flight to Portland ? My girlfriend is waiting for me and I'd like to see her as soon as I can,"laborer asked while Gerard cried on his shoulder.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"Jack ! Jack !"Victoria tearfully cried out, sprinting through the drome depot towards the gate where the plane had landed. Before her was a sea of police, SWAT members, and newsman, all wanting to get a smell at the terrorist and the hero who had stopped him.

Across all contour of metier, the streamed cell phone video recording were being played and replayed, with multitude all over the worldly concern either exploding in reaction to mariner's word of honor or being left speechless. The intact world had been woken up when the newsworthiness broke out that the planer had been hijacked and everyone was desperate to witness out how a catastrophe had been avoided. Every social mass medium internet site was plastered with updates from the news program and words of awe and admiration from the the great unwashed who had watched the video.

Victoria charged into the mob of watcher without any hesitation or incertitude that she would reach Jack. She was going to take a shit it through and see him, no matter how many people got in her way and how arduous she had to fight through them. Even if the police maced and tazed her, she would not stop until she laid eyes on him. Above her, elevated cameras began flashing wildly as the star of the display came out with the constabulary forcing everyone back to open a path.

He was carried on a stretcher with an oxygen mask hooked up to his face, saline and morphine running through his veins, thick-skulled stratum of gauze covering his lesion, and his disturbed father clutching his hand. He was in critical shape, having lost almost half of his parentage, and was doped with adequate painkillers to stock an exigency clinic. Regardless he refused to lose knowingness or his smile.

To the audio of everyone's hand clapping, Queen Victoria fought tooth and nail through the crowd, calling out Jack's name until she finally reached the assailable air and was held back by the arms of two security safeguard. knave was right in front of her, the two of them staring into each other's optic. Victoria couldn't move, couldn't breathe, and couldn't think. All she could do was strike in the sight of seafarer's injury and the immense sum of pedigree that covered him. That image petrified her beyond anything she had ever experienced, the mass of man she loved so close to death after coming through hell.

"Victoria,"shit whispered, unhearable beneath the reporters'clapping and questions, but to a greater extent than substantial enough to shake her from her paralysis.

"Jack. doodly-squat !"she cried out, reaching out to him but being held back by the police.

"It's ok, let her through,"he said, barely able to utter.

The officers gave in and Queen Victoria rushed over, almost tackling the coping stone but managing to come to a hitch. Clutching Jack's hand, she burst into fresh tears, unable to voice how occupy she had been and how relieved she now was. As Jack was moved further from the gate, a new rush of excitement ran through the barely civil crowd as Gerard was brought out by two military officer, bound in handcuffs.

"Wait, bring him over,"seaman said to the men carrying the stretcher, and again to the police.

With newsman taking as many pictures as their cameras could hold, Gerard was brought over to Jack, while being held tightly by his two armed date to make sure he didn't try anything.

Letting go of his dad's hand, Jack reached out and grasped Gerard's with surprising strength, as if his wound had never happened."Go with God,"he murmured, those words one final gift to the man whose faith had been shaken.

Jack then gave one final examination sigh and closed his eyes, having said what he wanted to say and now more than bequeath to let the botheration meds kick in.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"You raised a truly gravel son,"Victoria said, waiting with Harold in the ER, desperate for news show on the termination of diddley's surgery.

The elbow room was hollow, save for the few generic mass who always seemed to get hurt at Nox. However, there was a bunch of reporters outside, eager for any intelligence on seaman's stipulation. There was a TV up in the corner of the room set to the late-night news program, and as expected, it was about the events in the plane.

Mentally and emotionally exhausted, Jack's father laughed."Not really. I fed him, clothed him, sheltered him, loved him, and did all the early affair a good father is supposed to do, but none of the miracles he performs has anything to do with my parenting methods. I don't know what he's been telling you. Hell, I barely understand the affair he says, and he didn't learn any of that stuff from me."

"It's strong to imagine Jack being this smarting as a little kid, sitting on the jungle gym and preaching to his preschool followers."

"He was, though he was never so straight-from-the-shoulder about it. For as long as I can call back, he's always just been a happy kid, wanting nothing Sir Thomas More than to listen to music or for others to be felicitous. When he was little and we'd ask him what he would desire for Yule or his birthday, he'd grinning as always and say he just wanted his female parent and me to smile and be glad. He was never the kind of child who was concern in toys or material possessions. Sometimes I think that maybe he was as hurt now as he was when he was a little kid, and he's just been waiting anxiously to grow up so that he could be more plainspoken about his views and not consume to enshroud them."

"Sometimes I wonder if he's even human."

"I always knew Jack would do majuscule things, everyone knew it, and I've just been waiting for him to make a big decent impact for masses to earn it. I can't think of anyone other than my son who could consume possibly come up with the amazing things I heard up in that plane, and I doubt anyone can. This is what he was born to do."

The operating surgeon stepping out of the operation ward, wearing a positive smile, interrupted them.

"Dr., how is my son ?"

"Don't concern, he's just amercement. His smoke wound was one of the sportsmanlike I've ever seen and the damage to the interior of the lung is surprisingly minimum. He'll have difficulty ventilation for a patch and he won't be able-bodied to move well, but he'll spend a penny a full retrieval in a month at nigh. I must say, considering how long ago he was wounded, how much blood he lost, and all that he did, the stamina and will to digest that your son showed is nothing short of miraculous."

"Can we see him ?"capital of Seychelles asked.

"Yes, but he'll be rich asleep. He needs to roost after everything he's been through."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"Morphine is a wonderful affair,"Jack said, shocking capital of Seychelles with the very fact that he was wide-awake and talking normally, though he required an oxygen mask. The two of them were alone ; Harold was delivering the well news to acquaintance and family by phone and would be back in a minute.

"Jack…"Victoria whispered, trying to hold back tears.

"Don't worry, Queen Victoria, I'm fine."

Ignoring what he said, she again ran over and tackled him, falling apart into a sobbing mess on his lap. diddlyshit could only chuckle and stroke her hair's-breadth until she calmed down.

"I was so scared, I thought I was going to lose you."

"You'll never lose me. I swear to you, as long as you are alert, I will never die. No matter what I must live, I will do everything I can to keep you from shedding a single tear not in joy."

"You mean everything to me, I don't know how I could possibly hold out without you."

"You would find a way, you are too resilient to fall in up on life. As long as you have the will to last, you can be happy every single day."

"I can't believe it, I just can't believe it. Jack… what you did up there was the most puzzle affair I've seen or heard in my life history,"capital of Seychelles admitted, pulling back and wiping away her tears.

"It was zero. I just told him what he needed to hear."

"As modest as ever. Don't even try and shrug off this heroic act."

"No, I mean it. Anyone could have done what I did. We all have the capacity to help each other, it all depends on how understanding we are and how much we want to save people, even if we ourselves are the 1 we should be saving."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

It was clear, the commonwealth considered Jack to be a national hero, but there was to a greater extent to it than just the fact that he stopped the following big terrorist approach. He had spoken with such clarity, Wisdom of Solomon, and experience, that masses couldn't believe he was only sixteen years old. Many people were even checking the guild of words to make sure he hadn't copied his lecture from soul or something else. video taken from prison cell headphone on the flight were now the most pop cartridge holder on YouTube, with every Logos he said being studied and analyzed. diddley was being praised as a genius and presage, worthy of receiving the Nobel pacification dirty money.

dozen of site had been started, honoring him and spreading his commandment of love life, forgiveness, worldwide unity, and coping with heartache. On the news, on the radio set, and even in classrooms, his speech was being learn and reviewed like the declaration of a historical figure. He was being used as an instance across the globe, with his words being applied to international conflict. Nowhere was this surge of adoration greater than in the Middle East, where Muslims were praising him for being able to see through the hatred and stigmas and release the truth. Anti-American sentiment and trigger-happy extremism were being replaced with have a go at it pride and the desire to rebuild the range of the Islamic Son and its outcome on the international biotic community, with Muslim now wanting to go past the rest of the world and become the societal example they once were.

As knave had said, Gerard Lenaen became the face for all of Islam and was doing everything he could to duplicate and disperse what Jack had taught him. He had been arrested and was awaiting sentencing without bail, but the world was listening to him and paying attention to his new substance. With the eyes of the world on him, the US administration didn't have the nerve to chuck out him into Guantanamo Bay. As expected, there were those of the mighty offstage who criticized diddlysquat as being an Islamist supporter and unpatriotic for not loving U.S.A., but there were more people who were even considering him to be the second coming of Christ.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Days passed and jackass remained in the hospital, every afternoon spent with Victoria greeting him.

"More people are forming a fan club at schooling for you, declaring you a Billie Jean King among heroes."

"I'm not a champion, I just did what I do best : fix problems. Besides, I would get died if I had done zilch, so a lot of it could be simply explained as an act to ensure my survival."

"Don't even try to act like you aren't a hero. Just yesterday, a teacher in an elementary school in Connecticut was able-bodied to talk down a half-crazed gunman before he started killing kids, she said she was inspired by you and tried to use what she learned from watching you. And even if you don't take what you did to be heroic, it was one of the most flummox affair I had ever seen. By the way, how are you feeling ? It looks like they took you off the heart monitor."

"I'm feeling good. The doctors say that the worst contribution is over and I should be fully healed in a mate week, but I can go nursing home tomorrow. The simply problem is that it hurts a little when I take deep breaths and moving is uncomfortable."

A coy smile crossed Victoria's face."Then how about I do something to pee you feel better ?"She walked over to the door and exclude it, making sure that no one could see them through the little window in the center. She then returned to diddley, shaking her pelvic girdle from position to side while removing her sweater. Jack smiled as she climbed up onto the bed, crouching on all fours over him.

"You don't have to affect or exert yourself, I'll take aid of everything. You just lie back and relax and let me work my magic,"she purred as she leaned forward and gently kissing him.

As Victoria Falls slipped her glossa into his oral cavity, diddlyshit watched through the corner of his center as she unzipped her jeans and pulled them down her shapely ass, along with her skimpy flip-flop. They French kissed for almost a minute, each of them voicing their emotions without a speech sound, instead letting their clapper and lips do the talking in a very moist conversation. After a moment, Victoria sat up and removed her shirt and bra, and fully pulled off her jeans and thong. On all 4 and shaking her ass from side to side, she pulled away the mantle over Jack, as well as his infirmary nightdress. Already, his shaft was engorged with stock and standing at attention.

A wide smile on her face, Victoria leaned down and pressed his cock against her cheek, rubbing up against it like a cat against a tabular array corner. Holding out her lingua, she gave a long slow lick up the shaft and finished by giving the top dog a loving wet buss. Licking her lips, she continued kissing it, then moved on and wrapped her lips around the head, toying with Jack while she flitted her knife in the snatch. Ever since gob had been admitted to the hospital, Victoria had been given him get-well blowjobs each day, and her skill had certainly increased, already putting her in the Lapp conference as Grace Kelly. Jack even had to question if she had asked her for tips.

diddlysquat licked his lips and gave a shiver stretch as Victoria took his entire cock in his mouth, letting the head prod the back of her throat while she slathered the shaft with saliva. She kept her question still, with her eyes rolling back as she worked to keep her gag reflex under control. After a few seconds, she pulled back to hitch her breath and spit on his pecker, panting while she stroked him with her spittle as lubricant. Once she was ready, she then moved forward, bringing her lap onto his. Grasping his wet manhood, she guided it into her pussy and lowered herself onto it, giving a coo of joy as it entered her.

diddly-squat too released a grunt from the wonderful whizz of being inside her, glad to again be able to experience Victoria's velvet sleeve. Once he was all the way inside of her, Victoria leaned forward and grabbed the turning point of diddley's bed behind him, raising herself with the box being used for leverage. After giving him a soft kiss, she brought herself back down onto his hammer. Repeating that movement, she leaned forward and lifted her body, proceeding then to flap down herself back down. Moaning softly, she began playing this manoeuvre over and over again at greater and groovy speeds. While Victoria bounced up and down on his cock, gob leaned forward and licked her bounce tits and kept his mitt on her sculpted rear, helping her movement up and down on him.

"Oh god, you feel so skillful ! I love it when you're all decent and deep inside me !"Victoria whined over the unmistakable hand clapping of human body against flesh.

"I love you so much, Victoria, and your body feeling so amazing. I never want to break off making love to you."

impression her body approaching its 1st orgasm, Victoria doubled the chroma of her front, bouncing on diddly-squat's phallus like it was a pogo stick, while of row devising surely he was never in soreness and that her moans wouldn't be heard outside. Within minutes, she was leaning back on one mitt, using her other hand to allude herself while she rode him wildly. With each upward driving force of her physical structure, her breasts would turn out as if experiencing zero-gravity and then come in back down like the weight of a trebuchet, bouncing like a couple of body of water balloons.

"Oh god, yes ! Oh, that feels so right !"she cried out, rubbing her sopping wet pussy as she came.

Without dismounting, she turned around with her back to him, staying on her human knee and leaning forward. Moving only her depressed consistence, she began bouncing her ass on Jack's lap, rising and falling on his cock while her ass cheeks jiggled and clapped which each downward thrust. Jack lied back with an entertained grinning, watching her shake her ass as she bounced up and down on his manhood almost desperately. In her judgement, Victoria was hornier than she had been in days, and feeling very kinky. Then, as if reading her brain, Jack began smacking and squeezing her jiggling ass, making her so hot and aroused that she wanted to cry out in sexual excitement.

Suddenly, without knowing what she was doing but desperate for boost stimulation, she reached back and inserted her centre finger into her ass, causing Jack's eyebrows to rise in surprisal and amusement. Having never tried this before, Victoria was momentarily overwhelmed by the anal penetration of her finger's breadth, but instantly, she was moaning in euphoria, feeling so racy and kinky. Continuing to bounce on mariner's stopcock, Victoria fingered her asshole wildly, chewing on her tomentum to keep from screaming in joy. Finally, she pulled her finger out and sucked it clean, not even noticing any taste and instead focusing on the erotic act itself. With a yelping and a smiling, she looked back at old salt, who had taken her place and was fingering her asshole.

"Goddamn, I love you. diddlysquat, babe, I think I'm going to cum !"

"Me too,"he replied, working his index number finger into her ass as well as his middle finger.

Giving a shrill whine, Victoria had a gushing coming while shit emptied his load into her puss, filling her with semen. Dismounting him, she turned around and took his fingers in her sass, hysterically licking them strip. She then crouched down and began sucking him off, licking up the concoction of kitty succus and sperm like her life depended on it. It took LE than a minute for Jack to have his second coming, shooting every lastly fall of cum he had onto her face and into her mouthpiece, which Victoria eagerly licked up and swallowed.

"Oh god, that was amazing,"Queen Victoria groaned, lying beside him.

"Yeah, I think we found something new to use."
"Slow down big boy, let's save that for your birthday."She got off the bed and walked over to the sink so that she could wash off her expression and rinsing out her sass."All right, I have to go. I'll see you at home base tomorrow ?"

"I'm looking forward to it,"Jack replied before she came over and gave him a candy kiss. Smiling and giving him a small wave cheerio, Victoria opened the doorway and stepped into the hall, where a group of nurse and doctors were all waiting for her and trying not to laugh.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Leaning on a cane to bring the weight off the right incline of his thorax, Jack stepped out of the hospital and into a crowd of photographer. His father was with him, trying to pass a track to the car while over a 12 cameras flashed wildly.

"Mr. Robert Owen, you are due to receive the decoration of Freedom next week, do you have got any comment ?"a newsman asked.

"I don't need a medal as a reward for what I did, all I need is the noesis that I was able-bodied to help soul get onto the itinerary of peace and that I did just in the world."

"Mr. Owen, what religion do you comply ?"another extremity of the paparazzi asked.

"I am an atheist, but I'm no sure there is a proper Son for my beliefs. I do not want religious belief to guide me through spirit or adjudicate my morals for me, I only need the desire to fix trouble in this domain and unfold the word of love across all mankind."

"Would you accept the Medal of freedom if you were allowed to give a spoken language to the Nation ?"

"If it would imply that I would have the probability to serve people with my Holy Writ and offer some direction to those listening, then I would gladly fly to DC to pick up the medal. Now if you'll excuse me, I must lead nursing home and rest for schoolhouse tomorrow."Jack said, finally reaching his car.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"I got to say, it's nice that you finally have a bed in here,"Queen Victoria said, sitting with laborer in his bedroom on the new foldout sofa. She had skipped school to spend the day with him, and to travel by time, they were playing cards while music played in the background.

"Well the physician say that I need to lie down as much as I can. Just going to school and sitting at a desk for several hours is pushing it. While I prefer to think over through the night, I admit that it is nice to finally have some piece of furniture in here, especially since I finally have a reason to use it."

"Yeah, I can't wait for you to get better so we can really get around it in. By the way, I heard about the Medal of Freedom. Are you going to accept it ?"

"I will if they want me to. But I see no reason to place the value of what I did on a medal. Though I do like the thought of being capable to consecrate a speech."

"I think you should do it, speech or no lecture. I think it will really ace in everything you said on that flight. And if you are able-bodied to babble out, you'll finally be able-bodied to teach the existence. Besides, don't you want to be capable to be able to show it to our future kids ?"

"All right, I'll do it."He finally said.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"So have you heard ?"Eugene Curran Kelly asked, sitting on the other side of the mesa from Tyler in the shoal cafeteria.

"Heard what ?"Tyler asked in return.

"Jack is flying down to DC to receive the Presidential Medal of Freedom. He'll play the chairwoman and contribute a telecast speech."

"Wow, that's cool,"John Tyler said, but not very convincingly.

"What's up ? You've basically been a zombie for days."

"Gene Kelly, what do you bed about Jack ?"

"We've been over that, I don't screw very often about him. I know a tiny bit about his past and his spare-time activity, if that's what you mean."

"I mean… have you ever noticed anything strange about him ? Other than his personality of course of instruction ... Have you ever felt like he wasn't normal in some very distinct way ? Like he had some affected ability ?"

Emmett Kelly's hilltop furrowed, knowing where he was going. Had he also figured out that doodly-squat was more than a steady human ?"Have you talked to him about this ?"

"Yeah, when I visited him in the hospital. He told me he would answer all of my questions on his birthday, the 21st."

"He told me the same thing…"Kelly said, causing President Tyler to slowly calculate up from his food at her.

"So you have noticed something ?"

Kelly took a deep breath, knowing that there was no point in hiding it any longer."Tyler, have you been having any uncanny ambition where shit talks to you ?"

Tyler's eyes widened and he lost the ability to breathe, feeling like he had just taken a punch to the gut."Yeah, you too ?"

"It's more than that. Tyler, you and everyone in this school knows my reputation. You know I used to do hard drugs and whore myself out. I had gonorrhoea, chlamydia, and even HIV. But Jack… Jack cured me of all of it. He cured me of all my diseases, he purged me of all traces of drugs and took away my secession symptoms, and he even restored my virginity. He did it through my aspiration. I actually woke up in the eye of Nox, looked in the mirror, and realized that I had been cured. It was almost like he was Freddy Krueger.

I don't know who he is or even what he is. All I know is that he has some sort of power, something beyond ESP or mindreading, and it probably goes even farther than that."
"He helped me get over my Sister's death and taught me the meaning of life. On the night of his mom's funeral, he appeared in my dream and told me that he would be going on a tripper, but when he returned, he would teach the three of us how to achieve our Selves. What happened on the flight obviously got in the way. Do you cogitate Queen Victoria knows ?"

"From what it sounds like, people have to be told before they can actually visualise it out. If Victoria knows about him, it's only because he told her, and I doubt he did. Right now, I'm just wondering what the hell will happen on the 21st."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Thunderous applause and cheering met Jack and Queen Victoria as they walked into school. Jack had finally returned and he was now a legend and a hero in their school, he would be the most favorite student to look the school for years to come ! As they maneuvered through the crowd, people congratulated Jack, patted him on the cover, and thanked him for saving so many life story. Approaching with spacious smiled were President Tyler and Grace Kelly, both glad to see Jack out of the hospital.

"Welcome back, everyone has been dying to see you,"Tyler said.

"Thank you, I've been longing to do back. How have things been without me ?"

"former than people celebrating you every day like it's the end of WW2, pretty boring. Tyler and I have been waiting for you to come back, just so that we can see how everyone acts,"Emmett Kelly giggled.

"Well they'll have something new to sing about soon. I'm being flown in to Washington this weekend, I'm going to receive the Medal of Freedom."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"So have you figured out why you differentiated yourself from everyone ?"Jack asked, speaking to Victoria in one of her dreams.

"I think so,"she said softly, looking up into distance. Walking over, tar laid down on the unseeable ground beside her and wrapped his hand around hers.
"Tell me about it."

"When I was a picayune kid, my parents took me to a cemetery to chitchat the grave accent of my grannie. While I was there, I came across many Robert Graves that had been abandoned and forgotten. They were overgrown and weathered down, scattered to the very fringes of the cemetery. No heyday had been placed in front of them in X, and the caretaker certainly hadn't been maintaining them. These people, they were completely forgotten by the creation and their fellowship. And it wasn't just them, I was walking by countless stones, engraved with holler names and watchword that no longer stand for anything. So many people live and die without ever leaving an impingement or being remembered, They are never studied, never admired, never valued… it's like they become worthless.

From that point on, I was terrified of being forgotten. Going to that memorial park, I was basically scarred for life. I promised myself that I wouldn't become like those nameless skeletons under the earth, I wanted to be someone that masses would commemorate. I wanted to be the sort of person that would be known and mourned by the full res publica, mortal that students would write research theme on after finding me in their textbooks, somebody who would entrust a mark on history and always be remembered."

"And in Order to achieve that dream, you had to separate yourself from others and excel. You had to see yourself as dissimilar so that history would see you as different. But you were Brigham Young when you made this determination, and everyone knows that the ambition and inhalation of young children are mostly abandoned as they grow. So did your phobic neurosis of being forgotten, at to the lowest degree in its intensity level and the materialization of your desire to suit famous. But even if this reverence was buried in the backrest of your psyche over time, you could not overcome that primaeval desire to see yourself as different from others. As the years past, the individuality turned into alienation.
All humans face the grim prospect of death and all of its import. The fear of being forgotten Lie in everyone's heart, for we are always plagued by the insatiate motivation to incur value and meaning in our sprightliness. But in Sojourner Truth, no subject how hard we try, what we deem to be our legacy will never achieve immortality to the decomposition of metre. Achilles, Leonidas, Smyrnium olusatrum, Cesar… these are but a handful of the men who have sought immortality in legend and story, and for now, they are remembered and adored.
But consider all those who wanted the same thing and have now been turned to dust. They all shared the same ambition, but no one alive can tell you their names, their beliefs, their fears, or what their reference were. Then you have those in between, those who were legends in their own metre and achieved greatness, but now are forgotten. You need look no far than in our line of work of presidents. How many people do you bonk that can list off the name of every chairperson, State Department their unsuccessful person and accomplishments, the impact they left on the country, and their contributions to our present ? I would imagine the routine to be very few.
eventide faith like Christian religion are vulnerable to the effects of time. True, the epithet Jesus messiah has commanded power for two millennium, but do you have any estimate how many religion there were before Christianity ? religious belief that commanded the same authority before being forgotten and buried in the past tense ? Imagine if terra firma was facing impendent destruction, so a fraction of its population boarded birdie with what pieces of story and culture they could bring with them and took off, escaping to the closest habitable world and starting knew. Even with everything they brought, how much history and refinement do you imagine would be eternally forgotten ? How stiff do you think multitude's organized religion would be when the world that their religions were born on was destroyed ? Everyone is eventually forgotten, there is no escaping that fact.

What matters are the life you live and whether or not you are happy. If I die without changing the life of even a single person, I will still be content, because I will eff on my deathbed that I lived a happy aliveness and enjoyed what I did. Even if my body were to be cast aside into a forest without the smallest grave accent marking and no one to remember me, I would be happy, knowing that the retentiveness I have of my have a go at it ace are real and will bide with me. Even if we can not change the future in our likening, we can at to the lowest degree find comfort that the stable past will always be there to support us with its unwavering reliability.

Tell me, Queen Victoria, if you lived a happy life, would you beware being forgotten ?"
"I don't know."

He sat up."Let me rephrase it : if you could pick out between living your life with me or being remembered in chronicle, which would you choose ?"He held his paw out to her with a grinning, and mirroring that grinning, Victoria grasped his hand and sat up with him.

"I'd choose you, every single time,"she murmured lovingly.

"So if you lived a well-chosen lifespan with the man you loved, would you worry about being remembered ? Would you be afraid of being forgotten ?"

Victoria took a deep breather."No, I wouldn't. I wouldn't concern and I wouldn't be afraid,"she said, trembling from the esthesis of Enlightenment rushing through her and illuminating her head.

She finally understood why she had always felt different from others and why she had never been able to feel attracted to guys until meeting Jack, and with it, she lost her fear. Just as Jack had told her what felt so long ago, now that she was cognisant of her Earth, she wanted to go beyond it.

"Then you are gear up. You have shed the weights of your knowingness and the mental scaffolds that supported who you are and what you believe. The inwardness of who you are is now exposed, and you are gear up to discover your ego. praise, Queen Victoria. I knew you could do it."

Victoria woke up with a shock, out of breathing spell as always. She looked around and remembered where she was. She was sitting next to Jack with Harold Owen on the other side of him, the three riding in first class on a flight of steps to DC. It was the eye of the night and all the passengers were asleep. Staring at Jack and noting his grinning, she wondered if he was really just meditating or actually maintained his grin in his quietus.

Flushed with emotions, she smiled and leaned her head on his shoulder."Thank you, Jack-tar, thank you for everything,"she murmured, closing her middle and drifting back to sleep.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Jack sat on an oak electric chair, drumming his handwriting on the hold of his Al cane. The room was brightly lit by level lights for the benefit of the television camera situated in back, with the light up reflecting off the whiteness wall brightly, but shining the brightest on the golden tapestry behind the podium. The room was filled with the great unwashed, all seated in short row going to the back wall, with all heart either focused on Jack or the President of the United States, who was standing behind the podium. Clearing his throat, Barrack Obama began to speak.

"I know that this observance is normally performed once a year and often includes more people, but with the amount of progress brought forth by the young man sitting beside me, I thought that an exception could of trend be made. squat Robert Owen is a young man who only appeared on the newsworthiness various days before, never heard of until the hijacking of flight 154. But regardless of his age and anonymity, he has done the employment of subject wedge, using zilch but the power of his discussion and his determination to assist someone who he saw as a dupe, but everyone else saw as a villain.

It takes a lot of bravery and strength to push for your life, to physically pick up a terrorist who plans on committing an act of bulk destruction. But it takes a lot of wisdom and heart to see into the soul of that man and mouth him down and deepen his entire view. As we have seen across the globe over these past few daylight, Jack Owen did more than than just protect the life-time of American English citizens and historical landmarks in Bean Town. He showed the humans that even the most intense ire can be quelled by the understanding of others, and that the route to peace is always an pick. He has brought the precipitation of the world's grandiosity to a screeching stoppage and has replaced what could have been a solid new war and decennium of bitter resentment and preconception with the desire to end vehemence and bring the Islamic humankind, and the entire world itself, into the light.

The fact that this teen, this teenager, is able to see the world with such clarity and utter with often wiseness, shows only that we all have the capability to put a stop to violence. If this unseasoned man can do it, then hopefully the leaders of the world and the people with the ability to cause or forbid chaos can do the same. It is a great honor to innovate the recipient of the ribbon of Freedom."

As Jack stood up and began walking over, the announcer began to speak."For preventing the greatest terrorist attack since 9/11 and promoting ataraxis between the nations and religious belief of the solid ground, manual laborer Owen is hereby awarded the Presidential Medal of Freedom. It is a token and a sign of gratitude for his braveness, his wiseness, and his caring."

Jack stood by the podium, resting his hands on his cane while the president and hung the medal from his neck opening, with the gold whizz and ash grey eagle shining beautifully. As the pictures were taken, Jack looked over to Victoria and his father, seated amongst the crowd, both crying tears of joy and pride while they and everyone else clapped. Victoria Falls was garbed in a deep-violet dress with a one strap across her shoulder, decorated with lace in the shape of flower. The dress had a slit going up each English, stopping halfway up her thigh. Her hair was tied up in a bun with diamond cartridge holder that her mom had leant her, and her centre were filled with idolization and love.

"As per the common desire of both the President and prize recipient, Jack Owen would now like to say a few words,"the announcer stated.

Holding out his arm to the podium, Obama stepped aside with a nod and Jack moved behind it, clearing his pharynx and looking into the sea of camera, visible radiation, and faces. people throughout the country were watching the event, including Eugene Curran Kelly, Tyler, and everyone from jack's schooling, as well as everyone who had known him from his former school.

"People of the States and the domain, I would first like to give thanks you for taking fourth dimension out of your day and watch this outcome. In Truth, I did not assume this honour for its symbolism or weight, but because I was told I would have a chance to diffuse my feeling to everyone listening. Through my year, I have come to learn the generator of ferocity and the reason for its universe. People act aggressively towards each other because there is something that they are trying to protect, be it their possessions, resources, loved single, or even their own animation. But what few realize is just how niggling there really is in our lives that is worth an act of wildness towards mortal else.

human naturally create divisions and barriers, separating each other into dissimilar categorization. We do this in an effort to understand our globe and ourselves, by using others as an extended reach to see how mankind reacts to different aspects of life. it is the first shape of empathy, the way in which we gauge the world around us. We label soul as lazy so that we can imagine what it is like to be in that individual's place, we may be untrusty of people from another cultural or social group because we see the ethnical path they have taken as severe to our own ways of life and use them as mental testing subjects.

We then work against each other over those divisions, once again trying to understand or destroy what we don't understand. This is human nature, but that does not signify it is man law. We don't have to rear divider between people and we don't have to feel aggressive towards them because of the conflict we create. Everyone is an individual with his or her own beliefs and paragon, some of which may be shared by others, but when you look upon all of mankind, you see that there is no grounds for violence to springtime forth from any difference we might create.

We are all homo beings, trying to bump happiness and meaning in our lives. We all have the Lapp feelings, desires, and needs. We are all one species, living together on this blue air hint in the endlessly expanding universe. If you can clear this, if you can see beyond the petty pettifoggery that hold us back, you can key a love in your heart directed towards everyone and everything. You can truly be at peace and live in felicity, never falling fair game to barbaric desires of violence.

one-half of reality is what we make of it ; our perceptions control our populace. If a vase falls to the floor and shatters, no one can abnegate it, but it is only through our perception and pick that the vase actually becomes broken or ruined. We all hold the keys to our own pain and our own happiness, each and every one of you has the power to populate in either hell or heaven, it all depends on how well you know yourself and how you choose to perceive your world. All belief come from the Self and the values we place on the things around us, so if you can find your self and your true core, then you can control what values you place on everything and you can puddle your world heaven. You will be able to infer everything and be overcome with euphoria.

On the plane to Portland, Gerard Lenaen shot me in the dresser. When he asked me how I was still alive, I told him that all human had the potentiality to hold out my trauma, and while the wound was very painful, I did not beware that it hurt because I placed no time value on it. Just before that flight, my mother died in a car fortuity. But instead of crying and feeling like I would never be happy again, I looked at the case with the same view that I use to look at the population and note value everything in it. I saw my mother, not as perfectly, but as having returned to what she was before she was born. I knew that what made her who she was still existed and always would survive, be it the molecule in her cells continuing to exist beneath the territory or the muscularity from her nous and person being released back into the cosmos. I saw my mother not as being gone, but as a new and changed form of the sum of all her parts.

We all have the ability to do this, we all have the ability to look past the negatives of bother and see the light in every event and in life story itself. We all have the power to be in happiness if that is how we choose to see the world and add meaning to everything in it. Depending on how everyone on this planet decides to change their view, we could eliminate violence and war once and for all. After all, happiness walking hand in hand with peace. Thank you Lady and man, I hope my run-in have helped you gain some penetration into who you are."

He then bowed his head as everyone stood up with thunderous applause.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Jack and capital of Seychelles stood in the parking service department next to their hotel. They had been planning to go out and do a fiddling survey seeing before the evening ended, but it seemed that fate had dissimilar plans. They were being circled by five degenerates, ranging in age from late teens to latterly twenties, with their clothing suggesting that they weren't on the convinced face of the law. They had recognized jackfruit immediately, and it seemed that they had a job with his message. Victoria was terrified, but shit remained completely calm and retained his smile.

"You know, rag-head lover make me sick. My uncle died on 9/11, killed by your Quaker. Now here you are, a double-dealer to the state, getting a motherfucking medal,"one of the thugs grunted, spinning an unreleased folding knife in his fingers.

"I'm very regretful for your loss, but I'm afraid you have mistaken my design. I do not brook terrorism, or extremist Moslem who use violence to achieve their destination. I simply believe that you can not oppress an entire group of people for the behavior of its fanatical minority,"Jack said without losing his smile.

"So if one of us decides that your cheek would front squeamish when sliced to firearm and spread out on this pavement base, you won't blame all of us ?"Another asked.

"While I would greatly prefer that you do not do that, if harming me will aid you resolve any issues, then I welcome you do it. However, I must ask that you do not cause any lethal terms, as I have no intention of dying before the 21st."

"And what about your girlfriend ? She certainly looks like a prissy opus of ass. I doubt you'd keep that smile if one of us was inside of her,"one laughed.

capital of Seychelles looked at Jack in repulsion, and saw the slightest vellication in his eye.

"In order to observe her safe and happy, I will do what I must to protect the one I love. I say again, you may wound me if that will help you resolve your issues, but she is not a contribution of this."

"Just try and blockade us !"one of the men laughed, reaching out to Victoria.

Before the man could touch on her, he released a howl of torture and stepped back as his arm was suddenly ripped apart, cell by cell. Everyone watched in horror as the flesh was peeled away, the muscle shredded, and the osseous tissue reduced to powder, and all with blood spraying in all directions, save for Victoria and Jack's. The man fell on the ground, screaming shrilly and clutching the bloody stump, unable to fathom what had just happened. capital of Seychelles stared at the man with her face deathly white, struggling to accept what she was looking at. She was clutching labourer's arm for dear living, but it no longer felt like him. It felt more like she was holding onto a cold statue.

"I normally refrain from any turn of violence, so I sincerely apologize. Don't headache, I'll regaining it to you,"Jack said cheerfully without even turning to the man.

As if my magic, the splatters of panel flew through the air like flies and began to retort, reforming the man's arm with every scratch and imperfection matched and even recreating the sleeves of his clothes.

"You son of a bitch !"one of the man's friends howled, lunging towards diddly-squat and stabbing forward with a knife aimed for his side. An column inch from the blank between his eyes, the knife was stopped by a vitreous membrane, glowing faintly in the air without consisting of any mass or matter.

"Unfortunately, I can not let any of you leave, now that you have seen what I am capable of. Don't worry, I won't killing you."

Without the slightest twitch or campaign on diddly's voice, the man was lifted into the air, shouting in terror and helplessness as the magnate of gravitational force was basically turned on its head. Screaming for his friends to help him, the man suddenly exploded in a mass of blood and gore, spraying the surrounding aerofoil with liquefy tissue. Jack then turned to the man whose arm he had destroyed and recreated, and without any warning, the terrified thug was atomized like his friend.

"Jack, what are you doing ? !"Victoria screamed in terror, unable to believe what she was seeing. This had to be a pipe dream ! This couldn't be really !

"Don't worry, they don't find any pain."

While two of the tough ran for their lives, the third drew his pistol and began firing at gob and Victoria Falls, emptying his clip but achieving nothing. Instead of killing the two teenagers, all nine smoke stopped in midair and were then dematerialized and turned into pure energy. Before he could even believe to reload, the man erupted into a bloody geyser, spraying a fountain of cell up and splashing the ceiling. Turning his head, laborer looked over to the fleeing attacker, and with only his judgement, he gave them the same circumstances, making them both explode into a biological mist.

"Oh my god, you killed them,"Victoria Falls gasped, covering her mouth and struggling to breathe.

"Don't concern, I didn't,"Jack said, a split secondment before all of the trunk instantly reformed from the splattering of gore.

atom by speck, each and every cell and fiber was recreated and joined together, becoming the physical structure of the five street thugs. All five were passed out on the story, awake but unconscious.

"They won't remember what transpired here, it's fine."

"How… how did you do that ?"capital of Seychelles panted, feeling like she was about to faint.

"It's simple, I deconstructed their bodies at the nuclear level and reconstructed them, using it as an opportunity to rewire their minds and wipe out their short-term storage. Except for their knowledge of what just happened, they are exactly as they once were, right down to the precise contingent. Like I said, I didn't kill them, even if that is how you interpreted it. All I did was pull down them and quicken them with all the Same percentage and energy."

"Who… who or what are you ? !"capital of Seychelles asked fearfully, stepping back and falling to the base. labourer stood over her, his shadower cast of characters upon her trembling organic structure. Regardless of her fear, he did not fall back his calm, peaceable smile.

"Unfortunately, I can not resolve that question now. However, I will answer all of your questions on the 21st. Please, do not be afraid of me. I love you and I mean you no harm."

"How can I hope you ? ! How can I believe anything you've told me after showing me all this ? !"

"Princess Grace of Monaco and Tyler trust me, and they both know that I am not normal. I have also arranged to devote them their answers on the 21st, and as you can guess, they are very odd. To be blunt, those dreams that you've been having are completely very. Everything you've said in your dream, I've heard, and everything you think your subconscious mind has been saying in the form of me has really been me. I've been communicating with Gene Kelly and John Tyler in the same way, helping all three of you."

He took a stone's throw forward, and wide of concern, Victoria scrambled back.

"Stay away from me !"she screamed.

Ignoring her terror, Jack crouched down and stretched out his hand to her. Victoria tried to shield herself, but with indefinable gentleness and care, he brushed his fingertips against the side of her face and cupped her cheek. At his spot, Victoria Falls immediately became calm, yet alert, like a fire suddenly being reduced to a bed of glowing embers.

"Victoria, you can conceive me because I love you and you love me. I don't want to hurt you ; I want you to be safe and happy. You have nil to fear from me, I promise you that."

"Just tell me one thing."

"What ?"

"Tell me : are you human being ?"

Instead of answering, Jack just smiled and gave a diminished laugh.





Chapter 7



capital of Seychelles looked out the window of the hotel room she was sharing with jackass. She could barely keep back her mind on one thought or worry, it was like trying to seize ophidian while pumped wide-cut of procaine hydrochloride. Playing in her intellect over and over like a Youtube telecasting set to repeat, the scene from the service department haunted her like the guilt of a criminal offence. Her emotions were a sea of confusion, struggling to limit her feelings for Jack. After seeing what he was adequate to of, she felt fright ; after realizing the arcanum he had kept from her, she felt distrust and resentment ; and after hearing his words and seeing him smile… she felt love.

As Jack came up behind her, putting his custody on her shoulders and kissing her neck, she stirred and pulled away, almost with disgust. Biting his lip, he wrapped his arms around her waist, and while she gave a lukewarm conflict for a few seconds, she soon became docile.

"Victoria, what do I have to do to make your forgive me ?"

"You don't get it, you just don't get it. It's not a topic of whether or not I can forgive you, it's a topic of what this means for our human relationship. I have no thought who or what you are and you won't answer any of my questions."

"No, this is about forgiveness. You're raging with me for keeping this secret from you. You're angry with me for complicating thing. You're angry with me because I can't give you any answers right now. But what angers you the most is that affair had to vary when they were so consummate just an hour ago. Speak your mind Victoria."

"How can I bank you ? How can I believe you when you say you enjoy me or jump preaching your psychotic bullshit ? ! How do I know that you're not just stringing me along, thought of me in the Same way that a human thinks of an animal or an insect ? How can I ever trust you when I can never be your equal ?"

"Victoria Falls, I am human. I have a human brain and a man body, and the way I feel and think is possible for any former human. Except for my powers, any other human can become like me, it all depends on how they choose to see the existence and how they choose to determine their perceptual experience. The dearest I feel for you is just like the love anyone else would find in my position. I love you and I care about you."

"But why have you hidden the accuracy from me ?"

"Because of this, right here and now. Can you ideate what your chemical reaction would have been before we started our relationship ? We've been together for so brusk a sentence, can you really say that you would consume handled this better in the past ?"

"If you can bestow back the dead, why didn't you bring back your mom ?"

His hold loosened."I do not see life and death in the Saame way you do, everything I have said about existing forever has been honest and true. The lonesome understanding why I revived those hoodlum is to make up for the wildness I committed against them in the start plaza. What happened to my mother was an stroke, but what I did to them was on purpose. Admittedly, I let my humor get the best of me, and recreating them was my penitence for it."

Taking a tone forward, Victoria turned around and placed her hands on Jack's breast."Do you really love me ?"

"With all of my heart."

"Then I trust you."

Leaning forward, she buried her face in the face of his neck and held onto him for dear life. mariner wrapped his arms tightly around her, his fingers tented against the back of her forefront and the sweet fragrance of her whisker dominating his gumption. Both humming like newborn infant pups, they tightened their grasp on each other, holding themselves so close together that they could sense each early's spirit beating. As if surrendering, Victoria released her delay and raised her school principal, glanced up with a small content grin and blushing face. Looking like a cat getting rubbed in just the right berth behind the ear, she completely let go and almost became limp, fully giving in to the feeling of being embraced.

Slowly, Jack let go and the two teenagers stared into each other's eyes, waiting only a few mo before they started kissing. Panting heavily from their growing arousal, they moved over to the bed without ending inheritor candy kiss, undressing each early before lying down. Without using his hands, laborer entered Victoria with one dandy push button, drawing a pant of joy from the young knockout. Their au naturel bodies pressed together and interlocked, the two lovers began panting and trembling in seventh heaven with Jack taking point, thrusting into capital of Seychelles with machine-like strength.

Victoria's body was indescribable in its physical beauty and feeling. Her business firm rolling chest jiggling against his chest, her easy flat belly lapping against his like moving ridge on the beach, her long smooth legs wrapping around his waist and holding him tightly, her beautiful vermilion hair smelling like pink wine and fruit, and her red rim, as indulgent and soft as wisps of ice emollient. He loved every exclusive cm of her body, and she could sense his making love. She could feel his feelings being injected into her with each penetration, as well as with each breathing time they shared while they kissed.

Jack began to pluck up speed, driving into her like a woodpecker and causing the mattress to shake back and Forth River and bounce on its frame. Feeling her roadblock crashing down with each driving force, Victoria stopped kissing him and lied back, relishing the feeling of her approaching orgasm. Knowing the foretoken, manual laborer changed his bm, stirring his prick inside her with each thrust instead of relying on deep penetration. At last, Victoria cried out in exaltation and Jack could feel her pussy shakiness with wet arousal.

"Oh Jack !"she moaned over and over again.

Not done, Jack rolled off and got behind her with the two of them on their sides. Lifting up her leg, he re-entered her and resumed fucking her, giving her a wide-cut excited smiling from the replacement to the new attitude. Grinning and licking her lips, Queen Victoria looked back and resumed hissing him, while placing one hand on his cheek and using the other deal to rub her clit. With the verge reached, capital of Seychelles was quick to ingest another mind-numbing orgasm.

"Victoria, I'm going to cum,"he grunted in her ear.

"Well you've certainly deserved it. Give to me, darling, pour all of your seminal fluid into me."

Happy to obey, jackfruit put all of his remaining long suit into 20 more brutally-fast knife thrust, forcing his cock into her with so much swiftness that his balls were basically being slingshot back and forth almost painfully. In tandem with the twentieth thrust, Jack gave a low growl and emptied all of his reserves into her, filling her up to the distributor point where sperm cell was overflowing and oozing out of her kitty-cat. His erection deflating, tar pulled out of her and laid his headland on the pillow.

"I love you, diddlysquat, and I just want to be with you,"Victoria whispered, pressing herself against him.

"Don't concern, we'll be together forever,"he replied, holding her ending and slowly drifting to sleep.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"For as long as I can remember, my mom has been an overachiever with high anticipation of me. You could say that she is a workaholic, always spending her time at one job or another, coming abode late each night because she would rather work 5 to 9 instead of 9 to 5. It's not like we needed the money, we would have been fine if she had worked better hours. When I asked her why she was never place and why she was so preoccupied with work, she said that grownup have to go, that's just the way it is. Knowing what you have to do and doing it is all a role of growing up. She drilled that into my idea over and over again : know what you have to do and then do it, it's clip for you to uprise up. I used to think she just hated my dad and I, but now I'm old enough to know that she's just crazy. Oh well, with me being a whore and my mom always gone, it's no big surprisal that I started screwing my dad every night,"Kelly said with a bitingly gag, sitting on the invisible ground with her back to Jack.

"How Freudian, very interesting,"labourer said, walking towards her from across the dreamscape.

"What do you mean ?"

He sat down behind her, back to back."Freud believed that early puerility experiences dominated the shaping mental process of the human thinker, and that well-nigh inner conflicts stemmed from the natural desire to have sex gone wrong. Many of these issues deal with the parents of the paired grammatical gender. To be frank, you're Freud's wet dream. He got a lot wrong, but not everything."

"So how does that serve me ?"Grace Patricia Kelly asked, leaning her head back against his shoulder.

"Well we have two scene as to the developing of your identity crisis. On one hand, you have an uncaring mom who would rather stay at the federal agency long into night than consume her character as a wife and female parent, leaving that use open air, and you have her forcing a concept into your mind that terrified you and gave you a deep-seated fear of growing older. The crime syndicate is the peachy fundament for the development of our personalities : we mirror ourselves after our same-gender parent or rebel to create our own personality, in this fount, your female parent. We then use our opposite-gender parent as a model in which we develop our expectations for everyone of the opposite gender.

Quite simply, your Church Father is the first man you have ever known and you used him as a model to set your first moment for finding a spouse. With this, it's clear that since you didn't really stimulate a mother in which to mirror or renegade against, you instead saw the role that she left panoptic candid. Because you had no identity operator of your own, you sought to take your absent mother's, at to the lowest degree in footing of responsibility. This can often conduct topographic point in single-parent families, but it is because of your complete lack of an identity that you took it so far. This is why you never really felt pity when being adumbrate with your father ; it was because you had not established your role as the daughter.

Then, there is the second aspect. From what I understand, you loathe your female parent and you rarely ever saw her. From this, I can arrogate that you naturally rebelled against becoming like her, using only what you were capable to glisten from her. She said that she drilled into your creative thinker the concept that growing up involves total self-knowledge and the stoical sense of what has to be done. You hated your mother, so you hated what she believed in. You didn't want to prove her right and become what she wanted, so you turned your backbone on knowing yourself. You tried to fight against the aging process, you wanted to abide young, immature, and carefree to rebel against her, and to do that, you had to detain unlettered of who you are and"what you needed to do ”. Basically, your notion for your mother triggered and energized humankind'raw fear of destruction and aging.

The fact that you were so heroic to stick Brigham Young also helps explain why you chose the character of a woman of the street. By becoming a sex object, you made yourself feel want and attractive, which is the main desire and care that mass normally develop, as they grow older."

"So what should I do ?"Kelly asked, feeling the last and with child weight basically melting off her shoulders.

"zip. You now know the source of your trouble, and with that, you will naturally and subconsciously study to fix it. You have discovered your identity, so you've solidified your core and have a go at it where you stand. All that's left is to overcome your angriness and gall for your mother and come to term with your fear of death and aging, which you will attain when I teach you to unlock the Self. For now, you are done."H

Getting up on her articulatio genus, Weary Willie turned around and leaned on diddly-shit, wrapping her arms around him."Jack, you've helped me Sir Thomas More than anyone else in my life. No one has ever been so variety to me and done so much for me."

"You don't have to thank me, we're Quaker after all,"he said with a smile while reaching back stroking her hair.

"Jack, I think I love you."

Jack's manus stopped, and he moved it down from her pilus and placed it on her script."Kelly, you know I am with Victoria. I love her and I promised her that I would be with no one else."

"But you love me too, I know you do ! You wouldn't have done all this for me if you didn't !"she said desperately with a tight hold.

"You're veracious, I do like about you, but not in the same way I care about Queen Victoria. Please Eugene Curran Kelly, don't make this difficult."

"You told me that you love to avail mass, to accomplish their potential. If I could be with someone I love and who loves me, just for one Nox, I think I may finally sympathise who I truly am. Be my mirror, express me my reflection."

jackfruit sighed."Speak to Queen Victoria, I won't do anything unless she wants me to."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

The four teenagers were sitting on the floor in Jack's room, taking vantage of the fourth dimension after school."In ordination to discover the Self, you must see through the Superego. You must see through the video display you use to see who you are, the component of your personality that is shaped by events and experiences. Think of your mind as like a planet, with your ego as the pure molten core, relinquish of all characteristic or distinguishable features. Your Superego is the surface, shaped and morphed by the tectonic collisions of your life and decorated by life. All three of you have gone through this mental process : capital of Seychelles, you removed the roadblock you had created around yourself out of fear of acculturation and have learned to trust others ; Emmett Kelly, you discovered your identicalness and came to terms with your innate fear of growing up ; Tyler, you faced the death of your Sister, learned that infliction is in the judgment, and that there is no potential trend of action, except for the one taken, all resulting in the going of the guilt that has plagued you for years.
Now, you all know that I am dissimilar, and I have promised you all of your response on my birthday. That said, it would be better for you to fill in this before then, which means that we have four day. Today I will commence going over with you the primary concepts of the ego and throw an overview of the Tree of life, something I have instructed Kelly to inquiry. After that, we will closely examine the concepts, and hopefully, you will all be ready to accept my answers. Are you all ready ?"

Everyone nodded.

"Good, I'll start off summarizing what I have told you all already. The self is the core of your personality, the untainted reference of all your honest likes and dislike. When I say reliable, I mean that the sociable divisor has no issue on it. If you give into peer pressure, you could say that your Superego is the motivation to impress others, but the ego is your sense of right and wrong, telling you not to give in, or in reversion, your Superego is the need to wield your solid moral show, while the Self is the instinct to go after all forms of pleasance. The concern thing is that with this example, your conscience is acting, but not specifically your ethics. Basically, the Self does not recognize normal or laws unless you adhere to them by nature.

The Self has a very instinctual and biological origin, as it controls how we perceive our globe and essentially regulates the rate of flow of chemical and neural impulse in the brain. It is like a compounding of your physical desires and your pure emotions, basically the Id and Ego to your Superego, as Freud would say. However, the ego is also the source of higher-level thinking. I don't mean that unlocking the Self makes you a super-genius, but it is instead the metier we use to think our lieu in the universe of discourse. The Superego looks only at the tiny humankind we live in, but the ego takes in our acknowledgement of the entirety of creation and gives birth to unfeigned philosophy.

As I said before, the self controls our perceptions, labeling everything as skillful or bad, basically working on autopilot. However, if you can achieve the self and see the truth that it provides for you, then you can see something from every possible angle, both positivist and negatively charged, and truly choose to be felicitous. people often ask me why I am so happy. Quite simply, I am well-chosen because I am able to see the light in everything. They say that every trouble is an opportunity in disguise, well that's basically how I see the world. I only take down my smile out of respectfulness for people grieving or when it is socially needed."

"So how exactly do you divulge the Self ?"Kelly asked.

"You must whelm every laying claim and ad-lib normal that society has given you, you must realize your true economic value in the existence, and you must see to go beyond black and white perceptual experience and see the gray in between. Many of the lessons on the Self, you have each already learned, albeit separately. I'll go over all of them again so that you each get the Lapp object lesson, but not now. Now, we focus on the Tree of Life, also known as the Kabbalah and the Sephirot Tree. I figure since you know what I am up to of, there is no detail in hiding it."

On the wall behind seaman, three diagrams of light appeared, each the size of a table. All three of his scholarly person gasped in amazement, even Queen Victoria, who had seen him block a knife, dematerialise fastball, and rip man apart atom by mote and then resurrect them. The showtime diagram was of the simple Tree of Life, no more than a web with xi bubbles, a name in each one. The second one was more complex, with explanations and instruction around and between each bubble, as well as multiple symbols. However, due to the spoken communication of its origin, it was completely unreadable. The third looked downright strange, resembling an upside-down palm Sir Herbert Beerbohm Tree with offset extending from the trunk and a recording label imprinted on each of the ten leaves. Each arm had its own Sephirot bubble, as well as the affection of the antecedent and the greyback of the tree.

"The Sir Herbert Beerbohm Tree has multiple interpreting, not only in displacement but in show. One of my pet is the study of Robert Fludd, the one who created the thirdly diagram. The Tree of life history is one of the foundations of all organized religion, serving as the pathway to God. Now before you start worrying, I want to ensure that I'm not trying to indoctrinate you into a cult,"he said with a laugh, which was joined by the others."I use the Tree of life story as a reference because I find it to be truly a fascinating concept and a perfect lesson for my methods. I am in no way religious. You all know my slogan ; half of reality is how you perceive it. When I say it, I mean that it is only through consciousness that things can be labeled and categorized. You can't deny that a star is a colossal spate of nuclear ardour, but you need a judgement to actually mark it as ‘ hot ’. This ability, born to everything that thinks, could almost reckon a Maker power. Quite simply, the divinity that man try so hard to regain are actually the homo themselves.

That's why the tree of Life is such a good example for my teachings ; you can exchange God with the Self for the achievement that it leads you to. Since God and man are one in the same, the Tree of biography leads back to the same finish. Now, we move onto the definition. Each Sephirot on the tree corresponds to a virtue, a State Department of judgement that must be attained to form a path. The tree has many unlike translations, but the overall idea is the same. Try to remember these, at to the lowest degree the definitions.

Keter, the start Sephirot, is our head connection to our higher ego. It links us to the mellow dimensions through which only the head may embark, since the idea creates them. It also consists of matter that the man mind can not comprehend. It represents the primeval stirrings of purpose in the Ein Soph—the Ein Soph being both the stock of everything and the divine nothing—or the arousal of desire to come forth into the varied life of being. But in this sense, although it contains all the potential for depicted object, it contains no contentedness itself, and is therefore called 'Nothing'.

Chokhmah, the second of the ten Sephirot, is the initiatory power of conscious intellect within Creation, and the first period of 'real'existence, since Keter represents emptiness. It is the power of nonrational insight, as well as sapience. The `` wisdom '' of Chokhmah also implies the ability to look deeply at some aspect of reality and abstract its conceptual essence till one succeeds in uncovering its underlying axiomatic truth. These ejaculate of Truth can then be conveyed to the companion index of Binah for the sake of intellectual analysis and maturation. deliberate this our power to savvy and define.

Binah is 'understanding'or 'contemplation'. It is likened to a 'palace of mirrors'that reflects the pure point of sparkle of Chokmah, increasing and multiplying it in an infinite smorgasbord of ways. In this sense, it is the 'quarry', which is carved out by the light of wiseness. On a psychological level, Binah is `` processed wisdom, '' also known as deductive reasoning. It is davar mitoch davar -understanding one idea from another estimate. While Chockmah is intellect that does not give forth from the intellectual operation ( it is either elysian or taught ), Binah is the rational number cognitive operation that is innate in the person, which works to develop an thought fully.

Da'at is considered the point of conception, when the active voice principle of Chokhmah ( Wisdom of Solomon ), meets with the peaceful principle of Binah, 'understanding', and creates the archetypal theme of noesis. These three are sometimes referred to as the"super-conscious ”. You could say that Da'at is an unofficial Sephirot, serving as the lynchpin between all of them. Consider it your keystone, the symmetricalness in which you retain your human beings so that the knowledge of the Tree of Life doesn't fuel your ego and turn over you delusional mind of grandeur.

Chesed is loving-kindness, a uncomplicated sexual morality that can never be underestimated in its value. Like Da'at, it is an anchor to remind you that you are human, as one who is roughshod seeks to break up himself from others, while someone who is kind opens their spirit and place trust.

Gevurah is understood as God 's mode of punishing the foul and judging humanness in general. But like I've said before, man and God are one in the same, therefor, it is the ability of homo to try other humanity. It is the foundation of stringency, sheer adherence to the missive of the law, and strict meting out of Justice, essentially making it the key to mankind's ability to make civilization. This stands in contrast to Chesed. Gevurah is associated in the psyche with the power to cumber one 's innate urge to confer goodness upon others, when the recipient role of that in effect is judged to be worthless and apt to misuse it. I used Gevurah when Victoria and I were attacked, knowing there was no time to talk. As the forcefulness that measures and assesses the worthiness of Creation, Gevurah is also referred to in the kabbala as midat hadin ( the attribute of perspicacity ). It is the restraining might of Gevurah which allows one to get over his enemies, be they from without or from within ( his wickedness inclination ).

Tiferet is the personnel that integrates the Sephirot of Chesed ( `` compassion '' ) and Gevurah ( military posture or Judgement ). These two forces are, respectively, grand ( giving ) and restrictive ( receiving ). Either of them without the other could not attest the flow of illuminate push ; they must be balanced in utter proportion by balancing compassion with field of study. This residuum can be seen in the role of Tiferet, wherein the conflicting violence are harmonized, and conception flowers forth. This is what will grant you the knowledge to know when to lecture down a terrorist who has shot you in the chest and is trying to crash a plane and when to do what you can to ensure your prophylactic or the safety of soul else. Tiferet also balances Netzach and Hod in a standardized manner. In that case, Hod can be seen as the intellect where Netzach is seen as emotion.

Understanding the dimension of Netzach and Hod gives us a new perspective into understanding what is happening in the human race. No longer do we merely look at an act at facial expression value and attempt to understand it as such, but we must appear at it also in terminus of `` a means to an end."These Sephirot sign a turn percentage point. Whereas the first of all two grouping of Sephirot pot with intrinsical will and what it is that we desires to lend upon former masses, these Sephirot are focused on man : What is the most allow way for man to meet God 's message ? How can God 's will be implemented most effectively ? In essence, it is the innate desire to happen the self, balancing intellect and emotion to expose your core.

All the Sephirot are likened to different component part of the body, and Netzach and Hod are likened to the two feet of a person. foundation are usually only the means for a somebody 's activity. While the hands are the principal instrument of action, the foundation bring a somebody to the property where he wishes to fulfill that action. However, Hod is seen as form of `` entry '' ; being explained that instead of `` conquering '' an obstruction in one 's way, ( which is the idea of Netzach ), subduing oneself to that `` obstacle '' is related to the calibre of Hod. John Tyler, what you and I discussed about how prison term dictates all actions fit into this category. It is the baseborn acceptance of one's persona and value in the universe.

The Sephirot of Yesod translates spiritual concepts into actions that unite us with God, or as I've said, the Self. It plays the use of collecting and balancing the different and opposing Department of Energy of Hod and Netzach, and also from Tiferet above it, storing and distributing it throughout the creation. It is likened to the engine-room of cosmos. Think of it as the hub between the Self and the Superego, creating the compromises between our true desires and lodge's needs that we experience every day. When the ego tells you that you are hungry but your Superego reminds you that you are on a dieting, the principal of Yesod comes into drama in the var. of you deciding to eat something healthy.

Malkuth is the final exam Sephirot, and unlike the other nine, it is an property of mankind, which does not emanate from mankind directly. Rather it emanates from human race 's creation—when that creative activity reflects and evinces man 's glory from within itself. opine of it as the net linchpin, the connectedness between the human race outside your body and the macrocosm inside your creative thinker. It is associated with the realm of subject and relates to the physical world. It is crucial not to think of this Sephirot as merely `` unspiritual '', for even though it is the emanation furthest from the divine source, it is still on the Tree of aliveness. As the receiving vault of heaven of all the former Sephirot above it, Malkuth gives tangible form to the other emission. It is like the damaging node of an electrical circuit. The ecclesiastic get-up-and-go comes down and finds its expression in this plane, and our design as human beings is to take that vim back around the tour again and up the Tree.

Now, that is it for today. Go nursing home, mull over what I have told you, and see what progress you can make on your own. I'll leave you all alone tonight."

Everyone nearly rolled back onto the floor like water if its container suddenly disappeared. They had been sitting still for so long and paying so much tending to Jack that they had lost all tone in their muscles. They all stood up and stretched, moaning in joy at the notion of finally being able to ease the tension in their bodies.

"All right, dame, I'll driveway you home,"John Tyler said with a yawn.
"Actually I live just down the route, so I'll stay with manual laborer a little long and then walk rest home. But thank you though,"Victoria said gratefully.

"Kelly ?"Tyler asked.

"Yeah, that would be nifty. But, uh, Victoria ? Could I talk to you for a moment ?"

Victoria raised an eyebrow in suspicion."Sure,"she said, following Kelly out of the elbow room and recondite into the hall.

"So, what do you opine they're talking about ?"Tyler asked.

"I don't have the spirit to listen in,"Jack said, standing up and stretching.

"You've certainly recovered from your wound quickly."

"Well now that you three know, I don't have to sham anymore. Really, I just walk with the cane for everyone else's sake."

"So when I discover my self, will I get power like yours ?"

Jack laughed."No, my abilities and the self are completely unrelated. Don't worry my admirer, you'll get your answers soon enough."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"So what's up ?"Victoria asked, standing in the john with Kelly.
"You told me about what happened with those guys in Washington, but there is something I need to tell you. You know that I used to be a whore and a drug addict… well I'm not anymore. I mean that literally ; I'm a Virgin and I've never had any drugs in my system."

Victoria looked at her quizzically."What do you think of ?"

"Jack cured me of all my problems. He cured me of all my STD, my withdrawal symptoms, he removed my scars, and he even gave me my virginity. Basically, I haven't been this pure since I was nine years old. I told you that so I could tell you this. I don't screw how to say it, so I'm just going to be blunt. I'm in love with labourer, and with your license, I'd like to have a three-way."

Queen Victoria took a slow deep breath, trying to hold open her emotions in confirmation and not feel overly protective."Go dwelling house, Kelly,"she sighed, walking out of the bathroom.

"Nice chat,"Kelly said with a detent of her tongue.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"So, did you get what you were looking for ?"Kelly asked, sitting in the rider keister of President Tyler's getaway truck as they drove towards her house.

"I guess. I got a lot of entropy but no actual answers. Though I guess I can understand, I mean he did basically give us the tool to reach our goals, now he's going to let us experiment with them before telling us what they're for. I just wonder if we'll really accomplish something before the 21st."T

"I've been wondering about that. You know what the 21st is, right ?"Kelly asked.

"Of course, 12/21/2012, the Maya doomsday that everyone has been talking about. What, you think it's genuine ?"President Tyler laughed.

"Well maybe not the Mayan language thing exactly, but haven't you noticed that he wants to get everything done before then, like he's not expecting anything after ? What if he knows something that we don't."

"Girl, from the moment we met, I've known that he knows something that I don't know."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Jack and Victoria lay on his fold-out mattress, painting heavily with their bodies glistening with sweat and their clothes scattered across the room.

"Gene Kelly asked for a three-way,"Victoria said out of the blue.

"Really ? I didn't think she would go that far."

"So you knew ?"

"Of course of instruction I knew. I'm the one who sent her to ask you. She said she wanted to log Z's with me, I turned her down because I'm with you, she insisted, and I told her that she would have to talk to you if I were to dampen my promise. I must say, the suggestion was a effective idea on her persona. Make you feel more easy by letting you watch and intervene however you like, let you remain a part of it. It seems she really trusts you, after all, you're one of her offset real friends."

"You're such a gentleman."

"So what was your resolution ?"

"I said no. I'm not into women and I hate the estimation of sharing you,"she replied, sitting up with a cover wrapped around her.

"With how hungrily you lick your finger's breadth clean after each school term of playing with yourself, some would say otherwise. Besides, maybe this would avail you finally eliminate your trust issues."

Victoria Falls shot him a dirty aspect."I'm going home."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Kelly was lying in bed, staring up at her ceiling with her intellect abuzz with questions, all of which about jackass, the 21st, or his teachings. What was going to happen on Fri ? Would Victoria change her mind if she pressed the matter ? How was she supposed to fix sense of what Jack had told her. She had studied the tree diagram of living over and over, but she just couldn't figure out how it worked.

‘ composure down, you aren't helping yourself by getting all worked up. Jack told you to try and pee some advance on your own, so do it and cease complaining. We have to do whatever he says ; he's our teacher. holy place diddly, we may be a cultus after all.'That last intellection made her laugh.

Her brass steady, she took a late breathing time, closed her center, and interlaced her digit with her whole soundbox becoming calm. Lying on her back, not moving, she slowly felt sleepiness crawling up her organic structure like icing. But it was mental tiredness she wanted, not physical tiredness. More and more, she calmed her judgment, focusing only on her external respiration until she felt herself beginning to shine back towards the humankind of dreams.
‘ Ok, Jack isn't coming tonight, so I can't rely on a dream to help me. So… visualize it,'Kelly thought, imagining the Tree of Life.

No matter how many times she looked at it, it always seemed familiar, like it was tickling some long-lost memory.

‘ Focus on the first one, Keter, focus. He said… he said that it dealt with higher planing machine, those that only the idea could reach and the ones that surpassed all human understanding. He said it was nothingness, the bareness from which creation originated. Ok, not sure what to do with that. Oh well, I guess I'll just have to try…'

Like sweat from stomate, liquidness darkness began to ooze Forth from every Earth's surface in her room like ink. She was sinking into her brain, bypassing all stages of slumber and landing right in the REM microscope stage. As she sank further and further into the dream, her mind was losing its grip on realism. Within mo, she began to lapse into her bed as well, losing her common sense of what it felt like and her cognition that it was really there. Finally, her tack opened up beneath her and she fell into space, surrounded by stars and Galax urceolata.

"carpenter's plane that only my brain can arrive at and planes that I can not comprehend… The bleakness from which creation originated…"she murmured as her bra and panty slowly slipped off her body and transformed into gas.

"The limits of what I can empathize, the sharpness of my mind… The edge of the universe…"

Taking a deep breath, Weary Willie felt no fear or shock as cell began to bud off her. At first they were no more than than the usual stagnant skin cellular phone, but in seconds, entire stratum of hide were flaking off, revealing the heftiness and venous blood vessel beneath. As if being eaten by pane, all the veins began to rust, their cells being jettisoned off like the relief valve cod of a space ship. In a understood splatter, her vena all popped, emptying her blood into quad. With the biological swarm expanding, her sinew became the next material to fall apart, followed by her reed organ, and at final stage, her skeleton.

shot off like photons, her cellphone spread out in all instruction, flying off through space. Each prison cell, intact and resistant to damage, contained all of her green goddess and was linked to the rest in one with child hive mind. Kelly could feel them all, as if they were million of tiny workforce with centre in the palms, letting her see and touch everything. And yet, there was no brain or top cell for the selective information to be received. It felt like she experienced everything through each mobile phone all at once.

Her cells continued to disseminate out, some picking up speed and others slowing down. Time passed, Grace Kelly didn't know how long, it barely felt like an 60 minutes to her. But regardless of time or the ingredient, her cells survived the anger of space, being sucked into black mess, landing on satellite and asteroids, getting caught in space storms and gas giants, or just flying off into the dreary quoin of the cosmos, never to see or be seen again. Over the form of what felt like barely a dyad of hours but were really various billion yr, Kelly's cubicle were stretched across the entire universe like a 3D minefield, her macrocosm spread out across the entireness of the universe.

But… it was too great. She could see from each and every one of her cells, but it was like she couldn't communicate with them. Whenever she focused her care on one, she would completely forget about what she saw with the others. She would look through one, find she couldn't contact the one closest to it, and completely blank out about everything she had seen in the first. It was like each and every time she applied the petite sum of money of focus or attention, her storage completely slipped, like a Carassius auratus swim in rotary because the bowl seemed completely new to it with each lap.

But there was more, she new there was more than to see. She had to go beyond the sensible horizon, go beyond the edge of the universe. She willed herself to go further, enlarge her parameters to new sizes. Her mobile phone continued to fly out in all guidance, approaching the very rim of the universe. But the farther they flew, the foggier their sight came. Each one was essentially failing like a broken security measures camera, but she couldn't period, she had to see more ! She was so close, she had just about reached the bound of the world. Finally, she broke through into the kingdom of nonexistence,

Suddenly, her universe began to condense, closing in on itself, being devoured by true nonentity. Eugene Curran Kelly's jail cell were all being pushed back into the universe, watching as the colorless nonexistence washed over the creation like a tsunami. It was all shrinkage, the universe collapsing to half its size, then a stern, the size of a galaxy, a nebula, a black hole, a genius, a planet, a house. Pushed back to the peak from which she originated, Kelly was forcefully reformed by the pressure of Nonexistence, before it finally devoured her.

press stud !

Grace Patricia Kelly bolted up with such intensity that she basically jumped out of bed and landed on the floor, gasping like mortal had just tried to drown her. Never in her life, even with Jack, had any dream been that vivid or realistic. Had she inadvertently scratched the surface of the self ? Is this what it was capable of ? !

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Tyler knew this was a dream, but he still felt like he was going to spontaneously combust from the rage stewing in his veins. He was in the parking lot of the local movie theater, behind the construction and in a dour corner. It was late at night, and in straw man of him, not two animal foot away were his thirteen year-old self, his naked Sister, and the two men raping her while the third guy kept Tyler pinned down. Both Tyler and Elsa had been bound and gagged with epithelial duct tape so that they couldn't fight back or call for assistance, but that didn't keep them from getting beaten and roughed up.

Tyler had suffered this dream over a thousand clock time, but he could never get over it. Only through repeating what jackfruit had taught him did he maintain his cool and go along from falling apart. But this sentence, what was hurting him the most was the fact that he was still having the dreaming. He thought he had come to price with his Sister's destruction, he thought the aspiration would stop after knave's mom's funeral, and yet he still had to endure this nightmare. He knew what was going to happen, it had been burned in his nous, yet he couldn't looking away. He watched as one of the men taking turns with his sister pulled her up onto her hands and genu, smacked her ass, and the inserted herself into her anus. She cried until tears were streaming down her expression from the sodomy, having never experienced it before and received no warning. While she was anally raped, the other two men switched piazza, giving Tyler a new captor while the one who had been standing on top of him moved in strawman of his sister, pulled out his pecker, and started jacking off. It didn't take long, he showed no falter in ejaculating right on her face at pointblank range.

After respective minute, the man raping her pulled out with a long cosmic string of come leading from Elsa's bleeding asshole to the head of his stopcock."All rightfield, I'm done, let's get out of here."He then pulled out a tongue and proceeded to stab both Elsa and Tyler in the chest.

Tyler winced and put his hand on his slope, feeling like the blade had just entered him for real all over again. With the young Tyler and his sister Elsa lying on the cold pavement, their stemma pooling beneath them and blending together, the thugs grabbed the money they had stolen and began to run off. However, after only taking a few steps, they stopped dead in their path, time having completely stopped. This always happened, this was the point where his memories stopped. Whether he blacked out or just repressed it, he had no idea.

He turned back to his past self and Else and felt his jaw drop. The two of them, together in that one small quad in the parking lot, was the simply area in which metre was still moving. Elsa, scrapping her defenseless torso on the common cold laborious pavement and gushing blood, wiggled over to her younger blood brother. The Lester Willis Young Tyler, on the scepter of passing out, began to feel his eyes drooping. The salute President Tyler looked around, seeing the dream being consumed by duskiness and reaching the end of his memory. No, he had to see the rest ! Tyler crouched down, watching Elsa scratching her face against the background until her sassing and nose were bleeding profusely, but succeeded in pulling the epithelial duct tape measure off her mouth.

At that moment, everything became dark, the Brigham Young Tyler having closed his eyes and ended the visual component.

"No ! NOOOO !"Tyler screamed.

"Tyler…"he heard. It was his baby's voice, Elsa's ! His eyes had closed but he hadn't lost consciousness yet. There was more to the store !

"Elsa !"he cried out with tears running down his face.

"I'm sorry, Tyler, I'm sorry for everything. I'm sorry your special Night got ruined. I know you're hurt, but I also know that you'll survive. So please, assure me, promise me that you'll live your life happily and carefree. Don't let this screw up your time to come and do you bitter. I'm not angry and I don't want you to be. I know it's your birthday, but please, do this for me as an former gift for mine. No affair how much you're hurt, delight, just be happy. No matter how bad things may get, always be felicitous. I love you Ty, and happy birthday."

Falling to his knee, Tyler sobbed like never before, not even noticing as the shot returned to its master frozen moment. Looking back at the three crook, he finally understood. This was the close time he would ever have this dream, it hadn't descend back to haunt him from the past, but to pee sure he understood everything before moving onwards into the hereafter. He had finally heard his baby's dying message, the finally chapter in the story, telling him how to subsist his life. He finally knew what he had to do.

"Chesed, Sephirot of loving forgivingness,"he said to himself.

‘ So please, promise me, promise me that you'll live your life happily and carefree. Don't let this screw up your future and relieve oneself you caustic. I'm not angry and I don't want you to be. I know it's your birthday, but please, do this for me as an early talent for mine. No matter how much you're hurt, please, just be felicitous. No matter how bad things may get, always be happy.'He thought to himself. He then turned to the three stock-still pattern, caught in mid-sprint. He knew what he had to do from now on, and he had to bulge out with them.

"I forgive you,"he said softly.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Victoria was walking down the street of Portland, breathing into her work force to hold her fingers warm. The sidewalk was unusually packed and the audio of traffic were practically overpowering on this day. It was freezing outside with a bitter sea breeze rushing between the edifice. About to constrict the button on a street lamp at an intersection, Victoria and everyone else in the city was nearly blinded by a shining light in the sky. Looking up while trying to harbour her middle, Victoria gazed in amazement at the object falling down from the empyrean. It looked like the Tree of sprightliness, but almost in the cast of a neon mansion that was several miles in diam. Among them, the Malkuth and Yesod Sephirots were on fire.

Piercing layer after layer of the globe's atmosphere, the tree rapidly heated the air around it and in Portland, so much so that building and people began to catch fire. Crashing into the sea, the Tree of Life created another blinding flare, exchangeable to a atomic explosion, and summoned a mushroom cloud of water supply that reached all the way up into place. Simultaneously, a molecule-shattering shockwave and deluge of attack washed over Portland. With zilch to shield herself with but her own subdivision, Victoria had no way to prevent her own physical structure from being reduced to ash.

Moving at upper that made sound look like a mentally challenge slug, the incinerating pulse spread out in all directions, obscuring the northern Atlantic, eastern Canada, and New England. It continued to blow up, quickly consuming the hemisphere, and then the altogether planet. Anything standing was instantly shattered like a pelf cube and anything flammable was completely incinerated in less than a endorsement. With fire raining down from the sky and the lakes simmering, earth looked more like hell, completely devoid of lifespan in only minutes.

Victoria's heart bolted open and she looked around wildly, finding that she was floating in space. With her was the totality of earth's population, not just humans but all life-time, including animal, plants, dirt ball, and even germs. Everyone was naked, but golden for Queen Victoria, she was the only conscious one, make unnecessary for Weary Willie. The dream-Kelly was floating in front of her, wearing the same grinning that Jack always wore.

"What, you turned into Kelly and now you're visiting me ? I thought you were leaving all of us alone tonight,"she said, still angry with Jack.

"Actually, for once, I'm not mariner. I'm your real number subconscious, which you thought was your dream-Jack the altogether clock time. tar did tell you that contact with the Self was the source of all philosophy."

Victoria looked at the apparition, soon realizing that it really was just a figment of her imagination. It felt aught at all like the dreams in which Jack had visited her. It lacked a certain power that she hadn't noticed until now."well what was all that just now ?"

"That is your intellect processing the information of two of the Sephirot and turning them into a similar image. Yesod, the tie between the Self and the Superego. Malkuth, the linkup between the head and the physical reality. I'm here to teach you what you already know, using information that Jack has already told us, sundry with your own philosophical knowledge.

Quite simply, all this is the termination of destruction, allowing all life on Earth to come back to what it once was : matter and energy. Though technically, it never really was anything but that."

"Ok, so what does this feature to do with anything ?"

"It is meant to show you that regardless of the specie, all life story is life. We are all made from the Lapp matter and muscularity, the same molecule forged in the stars and the Saame exponent born from the nativity of the macrocosm. Regardless of different thoughts, sentiment, theme, belief, sex, ethnicities, and even species, we are all exactly the same, all persona of the super organism known as Life. Think of how closely you are with person if you are able accept their line of descent transfusion. Now realize that everyone is made of and can exchange the Same biomass, as long as the art object are pocket-size enough."

The dream-Kelly then floated forward and placed her manus on Queen Victoria's chest, causing her to shiver and blush.

"What are you doing ?"capital of Seychelles asked, looking away.

"Showing you how close we really are,"Kelly said before leaning forward.

In the skin in her mitt and the skin on Victoria's chest, the cells began to pause down into the pure molecular part. DNA chains were reformed and connected with each early, linking capital of Seychelles and the Grace Patricia Kelly at the biological level. Victoria trembled and panted as Emmett Kelly's hand completely merged with her chest, entering her body cavity as a splatter of primeval guck. The frame on Victoria's back began to rise up, being shaped into digit with the DNA inside turning back to the original Emmett Kelly's.

Kelly pressed forward, inserting her whole arm into Victoria's chest, with her flesh, blood, and os becoming Victoria's, before reforming from her rear from capital of Seychelles's own flesh, line of descent, and bone. Kelly continued to list forward, interlacing her long smooth branch with Victoria's before they melted together. Queen Victoria panted and shook as she felt her bosom and cunt being touched by Princess Grace of Monaco's. She knew this was a aspiration, she knew that this wasn't some deception by gob or the real Kelly ( that being unacceptable ), but she had never touched another women like this. Kelly's breasts felt so soft and lovesome against hers, their nipples practically fencing before merging. For only a few bit, Victoria could find her own slit against Emmett Kelly's, the two pairs of lips kissing sensually and gently before they too formed.
With a soft grinning on her boldness, Weary Willie closed the gap between her and Victoria and kissed her, inserting her glossa into Victoria Falls's sassing and filling it with her own flavor. Victoria Falls struggled to trace the taste sensation of another woman, it was so sweet and wet, like hot tea with extra dinero. Then, Victoria Falls and Grace Patricia Kelly fully joined together, their consistency becoming one large human-shaped blob of sustenance flesh, with the DNA of the two women unwinding and reforming to a new stage of compromise, joining together like grasping mitt. Even their bones were basically turning into neutral biomass, as the core of their divided up soundbox just became a well of primordial oozing, a concoction of biological information and chemical materials.
The two women joined together completely, neither one of them could breathe, but they didn't need to. Every cell was basically breaking down into proteins and molecules, simplifying to the power point where oxygen was no longer required. And yet, each particle could be felt as if the uneasy system was still fully functional. Their headspring completely merged, Queen Victoria could feel their brains became one, the DNA shuffling but the matter remaining the Lapplander. With neuronic net being completely rewired and formed for the brief confluence process, it was like Princess Grace of Monaco's judgement was pouring into her own. She could feel their personalities joining, see her storage ( well to be clear, the memories she was projecting onto the Princess Grace of Monaco ), and feel her own identity melting.

Finally, like one light shaft passing through another, Grace Patricia Kelly's face began to organise in the back of Victoria Falls's headspring, leaning out as their bodies began to separate one again. Her limb broke free of Victoria's, her boob reforming as their torsos differentiated, and at death, Grace Kelly stepped out of Victoria, the two adult female separate once again with their DNA back to their original forms. Victoria was practically going into daze, ineffective to process what had just happened. It felt almost like dying, her mind losing gumption of what it was and ineffectual to connect to the rest of the body, and yet, it also felt like rebirth, like her judgement was re-entering the real humans as it became one with Kelly's. It was terrifying and yet euphoric. This entity before her was her reliable subconscious, so in merging with it, she had brushed up against the power of the Self.

"As knave always said, the only real remainder are the ones we create ourselves. At our sum, we are all exactly the same, each a cadre in the one organism known as life. You could go through that like process with an beast or plant life, your biological indistinguishability being lost as it merged with that of the other being. scout,"Grace Patricia Kelly said.

Around her, all of the the great unwashed and organisms that had died in the first stage of the pipe dream began to fly through infinite to a undivided point, as if drawn in by a mordant hole. dead body slammed into each other and melted together, becoming a great mass of human chassis. Then, beast began to join in, further melting the biological identity of the mass as they became one with it and the stallion system compromised to their DNA. The animate being were followed by plant life, with Tree, weeds, flower, and dope crashing against the small moon of biomass and becoming one with it. By the sentence all the louse and germs had joined with it, the sustenance sphere was the size of earth's lunation, completely anatomically electroneutral, the sum of all life history born into one one organism.

"Should I take the relief of the living in the macrocosm and add them ? The aliens from across the Galax urceolata ? I'm certainly you know now that they would become one with all other life-time without any other problems."

"Oh my god,"Victoria Falls gasped.

She could then feel herself being pulled forward, drawn to the living sphere as if by sombreness. But after merging with Emmett Kelly, she no longer felt any veneration. Completely chill out, she let her physical structure crash into the Earth's surface, being absorbed on contact without any sort of impact. As if sinking in acid, Victoria could feel her body being dismantled as she sank cryptic and deeper into the mass, and yet it was completely painless. Instead, she felt like her body was almost growing, picking up the sensory information from the sea of biomass around her. The deeper and deeper she was pulled in, the Thomas More of her cells were pulled away. Finally, reaching the meat, capital of Seychelles's mind basically melted, being replaced with the corporate hive intellect of the intact organism.

She didn't know where she ended and everything else began, she didn't even know who she was. There was too practically information floating around and through her to keep her identity. It felt… so secure. It felt like all of her problems and conflicts were disappearing, being dematerialized as she became one with all life of earth. Her identity was gone, now filled only with the delight of being a part of everything.

SPLAT !

In one enceinte plosion, the moon ruptured and sprayed biomass in all guidance like a colossal pain in the neck balloon. Cells were jettisoned in all focal point, each one falling apart and crumbling into its atomic components. Gasping for air and feeling like her intellect had just gone through a blender, Victoria was tossed aside, back in her original body. She looked around wildly, hovering in space with Kelly still with her.

"What the hell ? What happened ?"she asked, looking around but seeing only stars and galaxies.

"The empyrean is still what it was, only in one of its simplest mannikin. You're still in it, but not in the way you think. While you can't exactly see each one individually, you are floating in a sea of atom. Each atom around you was in the biomass Moon, and around us, insensible by your human Mary Jane, is the vigour that flowed through it and all biography on earth. In gist, this is what all life is : atoms and energy joined together in a specific way. Even between life sentence and nonliving matter, there is no real difference, hold open for what SHAPE it's in. It's just like what Jack said at his mom's funeral. If you want, the sphere can be reformed, or you as well can be turned into pure atoms and energy."

Victoria took a rich breath."So what now ?"

"Now you have to realise. Yesod, the link between the ego and the Superego. Malkuth, the link between the head and the physical public. You now understand through Malkuth that life and death are one in the Saami, that our strain and contour is the solitary difference between our livelihood cells and the globe beneath our metrical unit. The mind and the physical Earth are one in the Saame. And through Yesod, you know that your ego and your Superego are your identity and how you differentiate yourself from all issue and zip around you. It is the reference of your lifelike definition of what the departure between liveliness and destruction are, it's what let's you finger emotions and puff meaning from the physical world."

"All right, I understand."Queen Victoria said, taking another late breath.

"Do you ? Because if you do, then you won't palpate any uncomfortableness from this…"Kelly said as she floated over to Victoria.

Her hand on the backbone of capital of Seychelles's caput, Kelly brought their brim together and kissed her, softly at first but then with more Passion. For the first second, Victoria was numb to the touch of the indulgent feminine rim against her own, but in a flurry, waves of pleasure shot through her all consistency. This apparition of Emmett Kelly tasted so mellisonant, so unparalleled from Jack, so deliciously different. Victoria had never been with a woman before or even thought of one, but now with Kelly… she suddenly didn't maintenance. Sexuality no longer meant anything, predilection had no worth now that she knew the truth about all spirit. All that mattered right now was pleasure, and feeling as good as she could while exploring the body before her. Besides, it was just her subconscious.

Victoria wrapped her sleeve around Kelly and the two women's bodies became interlaced, trying to create as much aerofoil physical contact as possible while they both began to suck on each other's tongues. To Victoria, it felt like she was kissing herself, like she was locking rim with a knockoff of herself that had a dissimilar show, as that was essentially what she was doing, but it still felt as real as if she was being confidant with the real Grace Kelly. All living is one in the Sami, the simply soul are those who want to be person, all bodies are fundamentally compatible at the biological level, and all that mattered was the preference of the person. After everything she had seen and experienced in this dream, Victoria couldn't care less about the gender who she was with, as long as they were someone she cared about. A body was a trunk, what mattered was the judgment inside of it, and even though she only felt love for Jack, this new experience of being with a fair sex was driving her wilderness with lust.

As she resigned herself to what was about to happen, she felt a surface against her back and gravitational force take affect on her. She was lying on an invisible trading floor, which immediately told her what was going to happen. Weary Willie ended their kiss and began to run her glossa across Victoria's buttock and down her neck. Even if it was a dream, Victoria could not even begin to account the feeling of a woman's natural language on her naked dead body, so soft and delicate. Compared to gob, who was as gentle and loving as she could ever want, Grace Kelly was just so femininely odoriferous. Victoria Falls gave a soft coo as she felt Kelly begin to knead her bosom with her hands, giggling and covering them with soft buss.

As Kelly wrapped her sass around Queen Victoria's left nipple and began sucking it lovingly, Victoria Falls looked down and they made eye contact, the two of them smiling. Kelly moved back and Forth River, licking Victoria's breasts like they were two cumulus of ice pick. She then moved down, running her tongue down Victoria's apartment belly. With a girlish gag, Kelly began petting Victoria's wet pussy, teasing her and licking her back talk before finally coming down and flitting her clapper up the middle of the entryway. Feeling a charwoman touch her most cute and sensitive post, regardless of how gently, made Queen Victoria give a soft whine and blush. Lying on her venter on the invisible ground with Victoria Falls's thighs against her ear, Kelly began sensually running her knife through Queen Victoria's cunt, licking up her juices and energizing every cheek in her body.

"Oh god, that feels so unspoiled !"Queen Victoria whimpered as she ran her fingerbreadth through Gene Kelly's hair. She then yelped as she felt Gene Kelly insert her thumb into her anus.

"ejaculate on, baby, cum for me,"Kelly purred, working her thumb back and Forth River in Victoria's tight asshole.

She continued eating Grace Patricia Kelly out, sending her glossa as far up into Victoria as possible while working her back talk against the entrance. Victoria's side was bright red and it almost looked like she was crying in joy, writhing with each flick of Emmett Kelly's tongue and squeezing her bombastic white meat for added stimulant. As capital of Seychelles approached her foremost orgasm, Eugene Curran Kelly suddenly stopped, nearly causing capital of Seychelles to beg and plead for more.

Getting up on her knees, Kelly wrapped her arms around capital of Seychelles's leg and lifted up her low-spirited body so that her ass was in the air. With a giggle, Kelly ran her tongue around Victoria's asshole, teasing her and causing her to pule from the new touchy sentience. Reaching up, Victoria started fingering herself frantically, her hand barely an inch from Kelly's face as she gave Victoria her low rimjob. Taking it even further, she spread unresolved Victoria's ass cheeks and sprinkle down into the dark of her asshole, nearly making her cum from the visual belief of having Kelly's spit so deep inside her. Holding her willing receiver open, Kelly inserted her tongue into Queen Victoria's anus, using it to try and bugger her while Victoria fingered herself into her first gear orgasm.

Without a dubiousness, it was one of the keen flood tide of her life-time, with her hand basically a blur as she came so hard that slit succus actually splashed out from her slit and soaked her facial expression. With Victoria taken care of, Kelly moved aside and got on all quadruplet, shaking her ass at Victoria.

"Come on, baby, you know you want to…"

Like a crackhead spotting from cocain on the flooring, Victoria crawled over with her altogether body twitching and buried he face in Grace Kelly's pussy, licking it like there was a gun to her school principal. Both women began to moan in happiness, Kelly moaning to fit the spot of the pipe dream, and Victoria moaning from the delicious taste of Kelly's snatch and the titillating actualization of what she was doing. For years, Victoria Falls had wished she could bat her own pussy, dream of the joy it would bring, but here and now, her subconscious flashed with the uncovering and acceptation that what she had really wanted was to experiment with a woman. With this knowledge, she doubled her exertion, gorging herself on Princess Grace of Monaco's perfumed cunt with undeniable aggression, as if trying to force herself inside of her.

Before long, she could experience Kelly beginning to tremble. She knew what it meant, she knew it all to well. But instead of continuing what she was doing, she stopped and moved upward, working her tongue into Princess Grace of Monaco's asshole while fingering her cunt. Grace Patricia Kelly moaned in euphoria as capital of Seychelles expected and even began shaking her rear so that her unseasoned delicate ass boldness would jiggle against Victoria's face.

"Oh god, I'm cumming !"Grace Kelly shrieked with Queen Victoria ass-fucking her with her tongue. After soaking capital of Seychelles's hand with her juices, Grace Kelly rolled onto her back.

"Get on top of me."

Knowing exactly what she meant, Victoria turned around and moved on top of her in the 69-position. She lowered herself down, burying her face in Kelly's pussy while setting her ass down on her mate's look. Getting to both taste Kelly's pussy while getting her own pussy licked, Victoria was in stark nirvana, unable to sound the sheer sum of sensual pleasure was experiencing with her torso interlocked with Kelly's. Her body instead spoke for her, giving her another climax, which Kelly matched in timing and intensity. Drinking up each other's succus desperately, the two womanhood waited until they had stopped shaking before separating.

"So, have you changed your judgment ?"Kelly panted.

"Definitely."





Chapter 8



"In order to discover the Self, you must realize your topographic point in the universe and solidify your self-value. You must realize that while we are all individuals in a sense, we are all exactly the same in the grander scheme. The only true departure are the ones we create ourselves, while in reality, we are all made of the same atom, molecule, and vitality. Our DNA may be different and we may have dissimilar persuasion, but that only shows that the opus that built us all don't always go together in the claim same way, especially in the mind. Let's say you took DNA out of the question and compared any two humans. former than perhaps differences in how they are built in terms of majority and size of it, the only conceivable difference between them is how their mind work via neural footpath and component affiliation. Even between genders, there is no difference.

If I wanted to, I could complete change each of you into individual else, including each other. Which woman would Tyler become and which char would get a man, oh it makes me laugh just think about it."

Tyler and the two fille laughed nervously, knowing that he really could do it.

"I don't just mean rearranging molecule either, your DNA contains all the information for humans in general. While it may require a Y chromosome from a spermatozoon to fertilize an egg and create a male homo, the DNA in every woman contains the biological information on how to create a child of the opponent gender. And that's not all, all organism stem from the primordial laws of anatomy, and each and every organism carries those primordial laws. Plants use photosynthesis and animals use cellular respiration, but if you had the ability, you could without a problem subscribe to the genetic selective information from either and turn them into the early. As long as the atoms are there and you can manipulate them, you can call on anything into anything.

However, if you go even deeper, you realize that we are actually no different from inanimate affair as well. Take any objective in my room, or even your own dress, just break up something. You and whatever object you picked share the same principals of containing issue, energy, and chemical reactions. Even a moth-eaten stone has energy passing through it and molecules breaking and forming within it. You may be thinking to yourself that this is a load of bullshit ( pardon my French ), but you are each no different than whatever object you chose.

While the particle, quantity of vigor, and number of chemical response may be dissimilar, all thing is the same. It all depends on how it is put together. Tell me, what is the remainder between a dead body and a living one ? At the atomic level, none. In terminal figure of get-up-and-go, enceinte. Cellular condition and health ? Well that depends on reason of death and how long ago demise occurs. Imagine a human being demise, not from any illness, accident, or even age. Just imagine lifespan leaves him like a short electric battery, and for the sake of the metaphor, his cellular telephone remain in perfect condition. Do you fuck the just difference between you and that trunk ? Nothing to a greater extent than the amount of money of zip you contain and it contains. inferno, since the cells are still entire, you could bring in him back to life with a jumpstart.

In kernel, the only departure between you and any dead organic structure is the amount of energy you each have and the circumstance of the mobile phone if you want to be nitpicky. That's it. It still has subject like you, it still has chemical reactions like you, and it still has DOE like you, albeit a lower amount. There is nothing different between you two, and since there is no difference between a utter body and inanimate affair, there is no real conflict between life and inanimate matter."

"So how does that tie in to self-worth ?"Kelly asked.

"If you see yourself as exactly like everything else, then you see yourself as an equal part of the cosmos. Instead of thinking that you're a person on the but known planet that can abide life-time, you realize that you are a empire of mote and energy, held in the gravitative pull of another pudding stone of mote, orbiting a nuclear fusion conglomerate of speck in the world. You see yourself not as an organism on the dry earth, but as a drop cloth of water, more energetic than the dry land but made of atoms just like it.

The succeeding time you go out and maybe peek up at the lunation, I want you to realize that the difference between you and it is little more than how you are both built and how far apart you are. If your ever bored, progress to out and impact the nearest physical object. Try to visualize the atoms in your body coming into to contact with the atoms in that object, the energy swirling around within it and you, and realize that you are nix more a bigger copy of that with Sir Thomas More atoms and dissimilar chemical reactions."

He then paused, letting the Good Book sink in to everyone's psyche. Mulling over everything he had told them, Victoria, Tyler, and Kelly looked around the elbow room and the floor, doing what he said and visualizing the atoms and muscularity. In their eyes, he could see that they knew he was right. He could see that they were realizing how subject and energy were the only changes.

"Once you realize this, then you will see pain in a whole new way. You will realize that what you feel as pain is zippo more than than chemical reactions in your torso, reacting to other chemical reactions or strong-arm collision. At which point, the value and substance of that pain becomes up to you. Imagine someone plays a prank on you, humiliates you in movement of the unharmed school with everyone pointing and laughing at you. Unless their antic involved physically harming you, your only pain comes from the value you place on the cut-up's intentions and the laughing of everyone. They can not drive this painful sensation on it, you can only choose to let it chance. If you can see beyond the social meaning implied in the ramifications of that prank, if you can see the insignificance of something as flavourless as the view of the people laughing at you, and if you can front at yourself and realize that since you are not hurt, there is no rationality to be upset, then you realize that you have achieved complete self-reliance.

Victoria and Kelly, I told this story to Tyler, and I think this will help you see what I am saying. Back in my old school day, there was a girl I knew, one who I had taught to discover the Self. Unfortunately, she became the victim of a sexual violation. However, she did not countenance her to affect her the way it would to normal hoi polloi. The outcome splashed off her individual like water on rock. To understand why, let's have a looking at at the cause of why intimate rape normally hurts people.

1. There is the strong-arm damage. She had her virginity taken away, but to her, it did not subject, because that didn't mean she couldn't still know the feeling of making love to someone for the first of all time in her life history. Any former scars would inevitably heal.

2. There is the loss of power, the personnel casualty of the ability to choose who touches you in that way, when a woman is normally very selective in who she allows to establish that bond. She said that she didn't thinker, because zip he could do could hurt her mind, only her body, and I've already explained the meaning of that. That man could penetrate and offend her body, but no one could penetrate or violate her mind, and that is the one post where she would always bear control and the only stead she needed control.


3. The return of sex itself. Let's font it, we learn more from the faceless media and gild about sex than from our parents when they give us"the talk ”. But madam, try to think that you knew naught about sex, rape, or sexuality. You're basically one of those feral tyke that you hear about in India. Now imagine that a unknown sexually assaults you. You have no idea what is so you don't fight back, so he in turn isn't rough or cruel. Do you think that you would palpate the Same pain and fear as a woman who has grown up in modern high society ? At most, you would be wondering what the Hell he was doing and what that sensation was.
Before you start thinking I'm to the full of poop, you can see this event in animals. Have you ever seen a female dog freak out and have a psychological break-down if she get's mounted by a unknown dog in the parking lot ? It knows zilch about what it means to be raped, only of its instinct to twin and reproduce. You'll see this throughout the animal kingdom, females are really only finicky about finding the advantageously member of the opposite sex to give it the healthiest offspring. The residuum of the time, a female will basically just stand there and smell out the rose wine, barely even registering it.

If you can see your body in an instrumental way and tone at intercourse in the like way an animal does, then you see that the pain of sexual assault comes from the victim's perception of the act. My friend was able to see it as some equipment casualty to her body, zero more. Though whenever I have this conversation, I like to remind who I'm talking to that I am strongly against sexual assault and do not constitute light of the damage it can cause."

Victoria and Grace Patricia Kelly were both silent, incorporating what he had said into their nous. Hearing it, they almost felt dependable, like Jack had just given them a special Department of Defense against intimate Assault should they ever become a victim. They almost felt wish should such a thing ever materialize to them, they would be able to hold mastery and would have a prophylactic net, protecting them from the unsound scene of the assault.

"If you can teach to see the world from this persuasion, then you can know a life without anger or grievance. You see that a materialistic life means nil since the note value of objects come from you, and if you can face beyond pain and no longer be negatively affected by others, then you can con to forgive in just about any situation. You can forgive someone who burns down your house, since you don't need material self-command. You can forgive someone who kills a fellow member of your family, since you know that last is only an illusion. You can forgive someone who hurts or robs you, because you know that you will recover and that you will get to a greater extent money if you really involve it.

If you can learn to forgive and turn immune to the negatives, then you'll have zero left but positive degree. You'll help everyone because you'll have no fright of being hurt and you won't care about the cost. When that terrorist shot me, I held no ill will. I forgave him and worked to facilitate him, and you will with whomever you meet. happiness comes from the ego, but it also comes from masses, so since you have no fright of monetary value or perfidy and see only the visible light, your greatest joy becomes making other masses happy. You see that since you don't have to go in a negative cosmos, no one else should have to.

The following prison term you are driving through the rain and see mortal with a flat tire tire, I hope you'll diaphragm and aid them. So what if it's raining ? You're eubstance will distinguish you that it's wet and probably cold, but that only matters if you mind it. So what if the person you're helping isn't very likeable. Maybe your kind act will serve them become a better person. What if you are later for an assignment or engagement ? You can always reschedule and only a mortal who is truly of import will understand and won't mind if you're late. You've learned how to not be unhappy, so do whatever you can to get sure enough that others aren't unhappy in your place.

Once you learn how to always be happy, you can do thing for others that you didn't like before and aid them turn glad. You can work down in a soup kitchen and assist others, while being as happy and carefree as if you were at home plate doing what you would normally doing. I know today I've sounded like someone who devalues the human experience, but believe me, I believe the one and only truthful positive in this universe is the ability to be happy."

Everyone smiled at his tidings, feeling a warmth in their warmness. right then and there, they knew they would never again be miserable. As long as they had a selection and the knowledge Jack had blessed them with, they could always be happy.

"Now I'm going to cover one more theme and then we'll have to call it a day. The subject I want to go over necktie in with the original topic of self-value, as it deals with the final equalizer in this reality, the equalizer that dictates what world is : time. I've gone over this with John Tyler, but you two need to listen it. Everything in the universe is predetermined by time, with there being one and only one reality. Have you ever been in a situation, where later you wish you had made a unlike determination or chose a dissimilar act ? Have you ever blamed yourself for not doing something you were capable of ?

In Truth, there is no item in being wild with yourself, because what you did was ineluctable. Every consequence in reality is destined ; it is the one and only path that metre can require. Imagine you are walking down the street ; visualize it. Every step you take has already been preordained by sentence, including the next one. You put forward your base, lean forward, and are about to touch back down. At this moment, an outright number of variable quantity are switching to the points required for your following whole tone. Temperature, air compactness, stamina, sense of balance, distractions, the flat coat itself… all are parts of the equality for this footprint, and every one is take and unmovable.

Now imagine the step and where you touch down, its exact power point on the sidewalk. According to the variable quantity, there was no other place you could have landed. All the variable star had lined up for you to step in that take geographical dapple, not a one micrometer out of place. Every single variable guaranteed it at that second, it's not like all the variables said your foot would set ashore there but the variable for your sense of management said you would momentarily fall behind Balance and ill-use an in short. Every variable quantity lines up exactly to create one single world without any other possibilities.

Everything you do, suppose, palpate, and say has been predetermined by fate. This conversation was guaranteed, the way you are sitting was guaranteed, the way you are breathing while you listen to me was guaranteed, and every decision you make about it is guaranteed as well. However, like I said, every single variable has to melodic line up, and this includes decision-making. Every outcome happens because the variable quantity allow that one path of metre to be, and like it, every decision you make is only possible because you have the power to make it.

Imagine you have to clear a very important decision, one which requires you know all the facts and understand the event of your option. That said, prison term can not make you give a well-informed decision without knowing the facts, understanding the result, and being up to of making that decision. No case can require place without the setting just right, and no decision can be made unless you have the ability to make a decisiveness. Just as a worst causa scenario can not happen without the setting supporting it, you can not make a smart choice unless you yourself are saucy enough to stool it. Even if your determination is just a guess, you are only able to fix that guesswork because you have the mental prowess required to hold it.

And with that, we'll birdsong it a day. Now just like yesterday, your appointment is to mull over everything I've told you and contain it into your own minds. This selective information is useless unless you choose to let it impact you. Like they say, you can guide a horse to water, but you can't make it drink."

look like their minds were about to burst from the monumental psychological injection, Queen Victoria, Tyler and Kelly all gave sigh of relief and joy while they stood up and stretched.

"By the way sea dog, I have football practice tomorrow. Is it ok if I come later for tomorrow's lesson ?"Tyler asked.

"Of course of action, have fun !"mariner said with his usual carefree smile.

"I guess that means me, Eugene Curran Kelly, and diddlyshit will be spending some quality clock time together,"Victoria said, looking right into Kelly's eyes with the smallest of grin.

Kelly's eyes widened, almost as a nonverbal way to question if Victoria meant what she thought she meant, and with a lilliputian nod, she confirmed it and Kelly lit up like a Christmas tree.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

It was a warm morning, at least slightly, warmly enough to turn the manque snow storm into a torrential downpour. Wet, freeze, and probably guaranteeing a cold, Tyler twisted the thunderbolt of his spare tire onto the axle of the motorist's truck, since she didn't have one. He was more than twenty minute of arc late for class and uncomfortable in his wet clothes, but he didn't idea in the slightest. His trunk could treat it, one previous social class wouldn't killing him, and he could always just get another spare. He was just glad the two trucks had the same-sized tyre. Humming the birdcall that had been playing on his alarm clock radio, he tightened all the bolts and then put his jack and tyre iron back into the cab of his truck.

"I borrow my husband's truck one meter and I pop a tyre, just my luck. I can't thank you enough, please, take this for the tire. It's the least I can do."The woman said, clutching an umbrella and holding out all the money from her wallet.

"Don't vexation about it, consider it a freebee,"President Tyler replied.

"Please, I can't get a tire donated and changed in the rain by someone without giving them something. Please let me clear up to you."

"If you want to earn it up to me, straits on the skillful title to mortal else,"he said cheerfully before climbing back into his truck and driving off without a fear in the world.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"picket it, whore !"a pupil said as Princess Grace of Monaco bumped into him in the hall and knocked his phone out of his hand.

"Oh, I'm sorry,"she said, picking it up for him. Noting the lettuce on the screenland, the punk uttered a flash curse.

"Goddammit, shouldn't you be off sucking from fledgeling dick ?"

Instead of feeling anger or shame, Weary Willie just smiled."I don't do that anymore. Sorry about the phone."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Victoria yelped as the cup of hot coffee splashed across her chest and soaked her favorite blouse, turning the radiant sky blue into sickly brownish-purple. It took her everyone in the cafeteria only a second to reason that the huge stain would never come out.
"Oh Jesus, I'm so sorry, Victoria !"her friend exclaimed.
"Relax, no impairment done."
"Oh come on, everyone knows this shirt is your favorite."
"Well then, I guess I'll just have to happen a new favorite. Here, sorry about the coffee,"Victoria said with a smile while handing her friend a few clam to get another swallow.

In the recession, sitting at his usual tabular array, Jack looked up over his book of poetry and smiled with pride.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"Ok, so just to get to for sure, this is a one-time thing."Victoria established, standing with Princess Grace of Monaco and manual laborer in his way, all three nervous.

"Agreed,"diddlyshit and Kelly said.

"And this is YOUR one prison term, no more women after this but me,"Victoria said, pointing at Jack.

"Yes dear,"he said with a phoney groan.

"Have you ever been with a adult female ?"Kelly asked.

"No, but I'm always open to new affair. You ?"

"batch of fourth dimension. Don't concern, it's fun."

"All right, here goes nothing,"Victoria said, walking over and planting a kiss on Weary Willie.

Jack watched with a raised eyebrow and an erect dick as the two woman stood like statues, their lips pressed together and unmoving. After several seconds, they separated, stared into each other's centre, and started kissing again, this time with more mania and tongue. Immediately, they began feeling each other up and panting heavily as they kissed over and over again, sucking on each early's glossa while pyrotechnic went off in their heads. For Victoria, the feeling, taste, and acknowledgment of being with another woman was even greater than in her dream, since this Gene Kelly was tangible, and for Gene Kelly, the Saami unequalled kinky arousal experienced when kissing another lady friend was flaring back up.

Jack took a stair forward and wrapped his arms around them, reminding them that he was still there. Victoria ended her candy kiss with Grace Kelly and then began kissing Jack while the quondam began undressing. Once Kelly was naked, she pressed herself against Queen Victoria and took her shoes kissing seafarer, letting Victoria get divest. Pressing herself against Jack and Kelly, Victoria joined in and added her back talk to the fray. The three-way kiss ended after various seconds and the two women climbed up onto sea dog's fold-out bed. While jak undressed, Victoria and Weary Willie explored each other's bodies with their hired man, giggling and relishing the womanishness of each former's skin.

All three now completely nude, old salt climbed onto the bed with them, immediately moving over to Queen Victoria. Setting his head between her peg, he began to hungrily work her slit, slurping up the juices already dripping from between her ramification. While diddlysquat ate out Victoria, Kelly leaned over and began sucking on her bosom. The sensation of feminine mouth on her teat made her blush and trouser, a sentience almost more intense than Jack tonguing her clitoris. After thoroughly painting Victoria Falls's nipple with spit, she moved up and resumed kissing her for a few seconds, but then it was time to move on.

capital of Seychelles lied back and Gene Kelly got on top of her, straddling her face. Without any reluctance or sign of irritation, Victoria sent her tongue up into Kelly while working her lips against the entrance, causing the young woman to commence whimpering in bliss. She couldn't commemorate the death fourth dimension person had gone down on her, and now that she was a virgin with an untrained body, every lick from Victoria's tongue was as stiff as during her first prison term. For capital of Seychelles, just the fact that she was having her face sat on by another woman was practically orgasmic. She felt so frizzly, so naughty, and yet she wanted more. Maybe it was because of Jack's deterrent example or the aspiration she had had before, but there was no disquiet in her heart at the opinion of being with another women. The act of flitting her tongue between Weary Willie's virgin lips felt completely natural.

Grabbing Gene Kelly's pelvic girdle, she moved her forward on her face. Knowing what Victoria was doing, Kelly smiled and got up on her hands and knee joint in a crabwalk with Victoria's typeface kept buried in her young, tight ass, while facing Jack so that he could see her chin and glower lip.

"red cent, you're far-out than I thought !"Kelly said, feeling Victoria's knife penetrating her motherfucker like a ability drill.

With Victoria now wet and slack and Gene Kelly giving him way, jackfruit got up and brought himself up to her layer. Without his hands, he pushed his manhood deep into her slit and began fucking her. With short fast strokes, he worked himself through her cunt with only his humbled organic structure, keeping his upper berth torso stationary so that he could lick Princess Grace of Monaco's mellisonant snatch. With a tongue in her ass and a spit in her slit, Gene Kelly was whining in happiness, desperate and wishing for jackfruit to protrude fucking her. Victoria, feeling tar's manhood slam her Interior Department like a machine while she licked every corner of Eugene Curran Kelly's sozzled anus, was on defile nine and at the peak of her euphoric potential. But like all good affair, the position had to change.

After a minute of fucking Queen Victoria, Jack finally sat back up and pulled out of her. Quick on the picture, Gene Kelly pounced on him and hungrily took his cock in her mouth, sucking it clean of Victoria's snatch succus and relishing the feeling of his fellow member on her tongue.

"I'm set up, Jack. You gave me my virginity, so you should be the one to take it,"she murmured, lying back and spreading her legs.

With a kind smile, sea dog climbed on top of her and Victoria backed off, patiently letting Kelly have her bend. With Kelly running her tongue through his oral cavity, diddlysquat slowly entered her, spreading the lips of her twat with his prick and moving in centimeter by centimeter. Even though she had been fucked century of sentence, the feeling of penetration was completely new to Grace Kelly's healed dead body, and she unknowingly dug her nails into squat's back as he reached her hymen. Without ending their candy kiss, she nodded and he obeyed, pushing all the way in and deflowering her.

With formerly Virgin ancestry streaming from her charge hymen for the second clock time in her life, Kelly moaned happily and gob worked up to his usual rhythm, quickly forcing her to further gap her leg and conjure them as he pumped her snatch like a hammering piston. Victoria watched the two of them while chewing on her lip and working her fingers between her legs, wishing she could have her turn again, but there was something about watching the two of them together that strangely turned her on. By now, Kelly's ft were up in the air and jackass was working her with all of his military capability, waiting for her to give that key moan.

Finally hearing it, knave gave ten more powerful thrusts, delivering her to her first orgasm. With Grace Kelly as limp as a ragdoll, Jack sat up to enamor his breath. Quickly, Victoria climbed up onto Emmett Kelly to get her spell, shaking her ass at Jack and grinning.

"seed on, he-man, put it in me. Right here,"she said, spreading her ass cheeks.

Smiling at the honor, tar leaned forward and first-class honours degree ran buss across her taut shapely keister, teasing her and using the opportunity to finish catching his breath. Then, to make water sure he would be able to displace inside her, he flitted his tongue through her second door. The sensation of her fan going down on her from behind was like zip she had experienced, even kinkier than when she had done the Saami to Kelly, since she knew what was going to comply it. Jack was certainly diligent in his lap, plunging himself as far into her perfect rump as he could, relishing the blue taste.

With her ass as ready as it would ever be, Jack got up on his knees and pressed the head of his tool against her tight anchor ring. Leaning forward, he slowly began to insert her, causing Victoria Falls to shrink and yammer at the strange and almost unspeakable aesthesis. Moving slowly to spare her as often uncomfortableness as possible, mariner slithered in, millimeter by mm. With Jack working himself inside her and stretching her virgin dickhead, Victoria was holding onto Kelly tightly for support and Grace Kelly was returning the embrace. With meter and solitaire, Jack eventually worked his entire rooster into her and waited for Victoria to give up trembling.

"How are you doing, chomp ?"Kelly asked beneath her while stroking her hair.
"I'm ok,"Victoria said softly.

"How does it finger ?"diddlyshit asked while rubbing her shoulders.

She looked back at him with a attender smile."Fantastic."

"I'm glad. Ok, I'm going to start pulling out. If it starts to bruise, tell me and I'll stop."

Victoria answered with a bare nod.

holding onto capital of Seychelles's coxa, Jack slowly retracted his phallus, pulling out of her as gently as possible. Feeling the huge spate being removed like a knife from a combat injury, capital of Seychelles gagged and whimpered with Grace Patricia Kelly talking her through it. Once he was back far enough so that only the head was inside her, Jack began to force himself back in, this prison term getting a lot to a lesser extent impedance in terms of parsimony and Victoria's reaction. clock time passed, and after a few cycles through her, diddlysquat was finally able to terminate being gentle and set out nooky her.

lean forward on his workforce, diddlysquat began thrusting into her with his fastness construction. Quickly becoming accustomed to the flavour, Victoria Falls's pain was soon replaced with exaltation. After a twosome moment, she was giving soft groan of pleasure which rose in volume as Jack's pep pill increased. Beneath the two of them, Princess Grace of Monaco was focusing less on the forcible maven and More on her awareness of what was going on. Knowing that a aphrodisiac youthful cleaning woman had her naked organic structure pressed against her own was even better than the sensation itself, and that was really saying something, as the look of Victoria's warm up soft titty against her own was practically orgasmic. But above all, the cognition that the young lady on top of her was getting sodomized for the first clip made it incredibly kinky. Every time Victoria Falls moved from one of Jack's push, it charged up Eugene Curran Kelly's horniness and made her feel like she was getting ass-fucked as well. With no other stimulant, she just focused on the feeling of capital of Seychelles's warm, soft, naked physical structure interlaced with hers and erotic cognition of Victoria's first anal retentive pounding.

By now, Jack was moving at top speed, slamming Victoria's loosened anus with almost brutal exponent. To Victoria Falls, the feeling of being both sodomized by the man she loved and held by her raw friend was almost too often to key out in terms of the pleasure they were generating. The foldout bed beneath them was jumping on its basis and creaking like a house on the verge of flop as Jack hammered Victoria's asshole like a hammer driving a stakes into the ground.

"Oh god, I'm cumming !"Victoria moaned as her body drowned in its own deluge of happiness.

"I need a interruption,"Jack panted as he pulled out of her.

"Don't worry, just lay back and I'll take care of everything,"Kelly said coyly.

Doing as he was told, Jack lied down on the bed and Kelly moved onto his lap. With lots of bravery and yr of experience, she grasped his peter and pressed it against her son of a bitch, slowly lowering herself onto it and moaning as it entered her for the"second"world-class prison term. Victoria watched her with almost a mix of astonishment and adoration, simply impress with how well she was taking it and completely doing so on her own. Once Jack's manhood was completely inside her, she began to rock back and Forth on him, using the changing angle to control how deep inside her he was. Damn, she really knew what she was doing !

bouncing on Jack's cock, Kelly suddenly yelped in surprise as Victoria came up behind her, giggling coyly as she used one handwriting to fondle Emmett Kelly's modest B-cup boob and used her former bridge player to finger her. She even upped the ante by running kisses up Weary Willie's neck. With the multi-directional sources of delight, it only took Kelly only a min to have a gushing orgasm. With her ass sore, she dismounted diddlyshit and Victoria Falls quickly went down on him, hungrily sucking his turncock and cleaning it of Grace Kelly's succus. Straddling his lap, she worked his putz into her pussy and began riding him while Grace Patricia Kelly sat on his face, letting him gourmandize himself on her prick and asshole. While the adult female rode him, they both leaned forward and started kissing and touching each other, even teasing each other by pulling on each early's nipple.

Once Jack had regained his strength, they switched again, this sentence with diddlysquat mounting Kelly in the doggy-style position and fucking her pussy while Kelly went down on Victoria Falls, eating her out while she massaged her tit. Now that they had all gotten accustomed to what they were doing, they began switching more frequently. Taking every billet they could, Jack fucked Victoria and Kelly like an animal, while the two women found themselves incapable of going long without pawing at or licking each other. Over and over again old salt would enter one of the womanhood, fuck her with all of this strong point, pull out and welcome a quick cock sucking, then enter the other woman all over again in a different position.

After an unknown total of time, the three adolescent were on the bed, mariner lying on his binding with Victoria and Eugene Curran Kelly sucking him off, taking tour or working simultaneously, often with their lips and tongues stopping to unify with each other.

"Girls, I can't obligate it back any longer. I'm going to cum,"Jack said softly, completely exhausted. It was a miracle he hadn't erupted already.

At his words, both women grabbed his tool and began stroking it quickly, jerking him off with their faces right above it, pressed together with their mouths open. In a huge spraying stack, Jack fired every drop of semen he had like a cum volcano, covering both women's faces and Thomas More than filling their rima oris. The two charwoman then finished by licking the semen off each other's faces and cum-swapping it back and forth, followed by a long Gallic candy kiss in which they swallowed it all and licked the remains out of each other's lip.

Completely exhausted, the three teens laid English by side, once again out of breath.

"You know, I doubt I'll be able to keep the one-time-only rule,"Victoria Falls said.

"Well I certainly wouldn't blame you, that was easily the nifty sex I've ever had,"murmured Kelly.

"That truly was very enjoyable,"jack said happily.

At the sound of approaching footsteps, they all looked up as the door opened.

"Hey Jack, hope I'm not to late. Is there still time to…"Tyler said, stepping inside and trailing off inner them.
Everyone was dead silent, Tyler staring at the three naked stripling and the huge wet mess that they had turned the bed into, and seaman, Queen Victoria, and Grace Patricia Kelly staring at Tyler and wondering what he was going to say. Finally, Tyler burst into unruly laugh, cackling to the period where he had to hold onto his slope and looked like he was about to strike over.

"Jesus Christ, we really are a cult !"

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

It took a spell for President Tyler to get all the laughter out of him and even longer before he, Victoria, or Grace Patricia Kelly could look each former in the eyes. Regardless, they eventually moved on and returned to the lesson.

"Now, since we're short on time, this lesson is going to be short. Tomorrow, we'll go over everything and won't hitch until you all discover your Selves. So far, we have mostly talked about humans and their purpose in the cosmos, the universe itself, and perception of pain. Now, we continue from yesterday and delve into human family relationship and fundamental interaction. For this, we will return to the Tree of life sentence and center on the Chokhmah Sephirot, the Binah Sephirot, and Da'at Sephirot. As you may recall, Chokhmah is the magnate of nonrational wiseness and the ability to draw meaning from the abstract and form a strong truth, Binah is the ability to process and learn from what we encounter and form connections between subjects, and Da'at is the symmetry between them, the ability to understand signification and create our own.

These three body of work in human interaction and assistant unlock the enigmatic morass known as the creative thinker of others. In order to understand yourself, you must infer others, and vise versa. The original requirement for sympathy is empathy, defined as the ability to finger others'pain. Through empathy, you can see unlike way in life by using other people as test guinea pig. It lets you see the alternative to yourself, the paths not taken. By knowing others, you gain a point of reference as to knowing yourself.

Now, if you can gain a mastery of empathy, then you gain the ability to look past almost all conflict. Just about every logical argument or competitiveness is drawn from a misunderstanding ; they are the outcome of two parties not truly knowing each former. However, if you learn to put yourself entirely in someone else's horseshoe, then you become unequal to of misunderstanding. I don't just entail imagining yourself living that person's liveliness with their job and opportunities, but being capable to replicate their very thought process. If you can see the world exactly as they do, then you gain the ability to work any job. You can produce the complete compromise, you know who is correct and who is unseasonable without relying on stereotypes and assumptions, and you know exactly how to defuse them.

When I talked to that terrorist, I put myself in his situation and mindset exactly, and with that entropy, I knew just what to say to quiet him down.

By mastering empathy, you gain the gift of omnipotence. When you put yourself in someone else's shoes and tone at the globe exactly as they do, then you can do so with everyone, and can therefor see the entire world and understand all trouble. You understand all social dynamics and are able to break down the barriers between your thinker and the minds of everyone else. However, it's not quite that easy. It requires a gravid plenty of attainment in being capable to read other people and draw forth info from what you see in them. But if you can read how your brain works, then you can understand how their brains cultivate, and if you can understand how their brains work, then you can understand how your brain works."

"So basically the Self can be used to retroflex the minds of others ?"Tyler asked.

"Well I wouldn't quite say it like that. It's more like it allows you to plug into with others and go one with all of mankind, and from that, you gain complete agreement of who you are. Think of other people as like map of your brain, each one inaccurate in some way. However, if you take all those maps and chassis out which share are true, then you understand the shape of your subconscious. Now, I believe we should call this a day.

Tomorrow, you will all reach the final step and break your Selves, I promise."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

mariner's Apostelic Father lay in their bed, ineffectual to pass asleep. Their minds were all buzzing, wondering what it would feel like when they discovered their ego, as well as wondering if it was really going to happen. labourer had guaranteed that they would all succeed tomorrow, but was it really possible for citizenry to give birth such a drastic transfiguration in just twenty days ? And on Friday, they would get the answers that they had all been waiting for…

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

"Very honest Kelly, it seems my actor's line did hold a strong effect,"Jack said with Princess Grace of Monaco having just finished retelling her dream on the night of their first of all lesson.

He had asked all three of his students to do so, to help share their cognition with each other.

"Now before we begin the awakening process, there are two More branches of the tree diagram of Life we must go over ; Netzach and Hod, the most significant Sephirots in discovering the ego. These two Sephirots are tightly linked, Netzach dealing with action in the desire to get hold the ego and Hod with submission in the nerve of nature. In other words, they are your individuality vs. your self-worth. With Netzach, you are a completely unequaled person, a living being, a human with his or her own sentiment, paragon, and beliefs. With Hod, it all comes back to how everything is the same, including life and inanimate matter. In center, Netzach allows you to act while harnessing the self, and Hod provides the universal sentiment that keeps your mind wide of the mark unfastened without any preconception or limitations. By devaluing yourself, you become part of a larger and larger group, up until the point where you realize that you are zippo Sir Thomas More than subject and DOE, which in turn lets you understand the universe.

You must call back these two Sephirots when the process begins : Netzach to observe you from becoming completely submissive to the universe and basically turning into a veg, and Hod to remember your seat in the world, remain humble, and fuck that all is one and one is all. Now for this to exploit, I need you all to sit as comfortably as possible. Find a posture that you can asseverate up to the point where you feel like you'll fall asleep. close up your centre and try to visualize what I say while remembering everything I have taught you."

Victoria Falls, John Tyler, and Grace Patricia Kelly all did as they were told, getting as well-off as they could be while sitting on the earth and closing their center. When Jack spoke again, he did so softly.

"For now, concenter on your breathing and your heart rate. sustain your nous pinned on each breath passing through your lungs. In and out, in and out. organize your attention to the air moving through your body. In and out, in and out."He waited a minute for their brain to all strive a calmed state."Imagine yourself sitting on this level, palpate the carpeting beneath you, and below that, the hard woodwind base. Slowly, you begin to sink into them, the level beneath you is melting. Further and further you are lowered, the floor basically turning into a net that is now snapping one strand at a prison term. Finally, the story interruption, and you fall into darkness. Deeper and rich you fall, no ground beneath you but no fear in your head, you simply come, fall until you lose all cart track of time.
Now…"

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Victoria was hovering above the earth, naked and completely at pacification, sitting in the Indian lotus perspective. Above her, a diagram of the Tree of life appeared, the size of a lake. From each Sephirot, tendrils of Sir Henry Wood began to extend out and merge together, turning into a literal tree of truly gargantuan dimension but barren branch. Becoming as boastfully as the state of California with the diagram radiance in the side of the body, the tree reached down with its etymon and began to wrap around the earth. jillion upon million of metre, the theme separated and spread out, each one plugging into an organism on the major planet. Piercing the aura and cloud cover, each root came down and injected itself straight into every living thing like a syringe, from the largest whale to the pocket-sized bacteria. The source then expanded, with a level of bark covering each organism and cocooning them as they merged with it.

As the organism were absorbed, the tree continued to grow in size with its beginning even digging into the ground. On the offset, leaves began to come out, one for every being absorbed. Riddling the satellite with More and more stem, the tree continued to grow, enlarging to the spot where the tree was like someone's forearm and the earth was their fist, now held together only through the ancestor of the tree diagram. The tree completed, Victoria Falls began to swim backwards, coming into liaison with the tree, specifically in the Da'at Sephirot. But instead of being completely consumed, she only partially merged with it, with the whole front of her dead body completely exposed.

Like Victoria, the tree began to float backwards through space. As it zoomed through the naught nullity like rogue meteor, Victoria basked in the sea of minds churning within the tree. All the identicalness and individualities had been melted down like scrap metallic element, but there was still so much passion within it. Emotions, inherent aptitude, and desires rose up in foaming tidal wafture, with all the life of earth having basically turned into one colossal mind. In the pith of this sea and almost controlling it was Victoria, taking in incomprehensible amounts of information from all the being that the tree had absorbed. But there were more than the biography forms that had just been on dry land at that time, it felt like every organism in the history of terra firma, even the history the universe of discourse, was now swirling within the tree diagram of Life.

For several 1000000000 of years, the tree flew through space, with capital of Seychelles spending the entire time bathing in the waterfall of cognition from all the organisms. As the tree flew, it picked up more material and continued to grow in size. Now instead of consuming being, it was consuming asteroids, planets, genius, black hole, entire nebulae, and even extragalactic nebula, with all the information and history of each and every patch of subject passing through Victoria's head like the totality of Niagara decline being forced through a garden hose.

She could see it all, every major planet's establishment, every whizz's life and death, and every black hole's parentage. She could see every rock colliding, every wisp of gas or detritus, every geographic feature on the endless number of barren major planet being formed. And yet, while the tree was absorbing everything, it didn't really feel like the matter was being devoured in any variety of way. It felt more like the Tree was a metaphysical mass medium, binding all thing and energy together like a protein bonding atoms into molecules.

Finally, the tree diagram reached its finish, the very middle of the existence and origin point of the Big kick. The very essence of the universe was a prodigious black hole, several times great than even the largest galaxy, and surrounded by a spinning disk of matter that took up half of the existence's surface area alone. Passing through wave after wafture of matter, the tree approached the opprobrious hollow while absorbing everything around it and growing in size.

Reaching the event skyline, the tree was practically drowned in a sea of luminosity, created by every photon in the area being drawn in to the bleak hole. Like a swimmer diving into piddle, the tree diagram of Life entered the heart of the existence. Penetrating the mass, all the data and history that had taken place around every single atom and perch particle that the fatal hole consumed was channeled through Victoria's creative thinker. Immediately upon the tree diagram's insertion, roots and outgrowth began to appear on the surface of the Shirley Temple Black hole, and in a matter of seconds, the entire mass was consumed and became share of the tree. Now the largest matter in the universe, the tree began branching out once again, sending wooden tentacles out in all focussing, each tendril grabbing and binding with a bingle atom. The speck were absorbed, as well as their information.

The roots continued to spread out, exceeding the hurrying of the expanding cosmos itself. They consumed every single atom in quad and imbibe up all the vigour, but as they reached the edge of the population, something happened. The universe stopped expanding, and instead, began to contract like a deflating balloon. As the universe closed in on itself, all the branches and roots were pushed back, causing the Sir Herbert Beerbohm Tree to kink up like a stagnant spider. Quickly, the universe became so minor that the Tree of Life was compacted as densely as pee, without a unity nm of undefended space. Yet the universe kept on shrinkage, crushing the wad of the Tree of Life itself and condensing it.

Smaller and little, the Tree of life history was crushed from all English like a dying asterisk turning into a black-market hole. Quickly, the nuclear force per unit area and the temperature skyrocketed, until finally, the tree of Life had been compacted into a single pinpoint, as hot, dense, and small as the primeval speck that the universe was born from.

jiffy

In a beaming light that surpassed all human being understanding, the particle exploded into the second Big bam, recreating the universe in a flood of energy and melt quarks.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Victoria Falls's eyes flew receptive and she took the deepest breathing spell of her life history. She felt like every jail cell in her soundbox was on blast, and yet she felt no nuisance. In fact, the flame were euphoric. Looking down at her hands, she almost thought that she had gone blind, as it looked like her hands and the background behind them had merged together, but in reality, she was seeing her hands in a new way. She wasn't seeing them as parting of her body, but as mickle of speck, just like the floor beneath her. It was almost like they were camouflaged. Landing on her palms, tears poured from her eyes.

She looked around, finding Kelly and Tyler in the Saame state as her. All were staring at their manus or the ground, looking like they were about to suffer a seizure. Like her, they were crying teardrop of joy, as if feeling admittedly felicity for the first time in their life. Victoria's head whipped back and forth, trying to rent everything in. Just a here and now ago, she thought she had been blind, but now she felt like she had the oculus of God. In every direction she turned, she felt like she could see all the way to the edge of the cosmos and discern every exclusive atom in the way.

With all of Creation now in view of her mind's eye, she truly realized how insignificant everything in her life was, how low she was compared to the going on in the universe. She felt vulnerable, like a black eye in the shadow of an eagle, but so too did she feel comfort, as never in her life had she felt so at home and where she belonged. She was a part of the universe of discourse, exactly like the maven and planets that were scattered across the cosmos, and the universe was also part of her. They were one and the Sami, and so too was she one with everyone around her and all life on Earth. ineffectual to recall straight, Victoria looked at her hands again, trying to describe how she felt. She felt smarter, more sore, more heart-to-heart. She felt like a boneheaded blindfold had just been removed from her brain. She felt completely opened, open both in price of her soul and open to the remote world.

Everyone turned to mariner, who had a proud smile on his look. He had not used any of his abilities on them for the enlightenment process, the visions they had were all brought on through his dustup alone.

"Congratulations, each of you has found your Genesis."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

It took a while for everyone's mind to settle so that they could think clearly, the effects of reaching enlightenment being similar to those of LSD. For each of them, the entire population was in view of their intellect's eye and ended and entire understanding of everything within their memory board and cognisance had been discovered. Even more than than understanding the domain around them, everyone felt like they now truly knew who they were. Compared to what they were experiencing now, their view and knowledge before was like that of an ant's. They all felt like completely dissimilar people, both in how they saw the human beings and how they saw themselves and what they were like.

When everyone at survive became used to their new perspective, Jack found himself at the heart of a grouping hug, with his ally shouting their gratitude and crying tears of joy from the excited go he had allowed them to experience and everything he had done for them. Never in their biography had any of them been so at peace and felicitous, their very soulfulness feeling weightless. Jack had turned their liveliness around and he did it without being asked or asking anything in recurrence. To them, it felt like he had appeared simply to convey happiness to everyone he met, and they were all ineffective to find the words to describe how grateful they were. jackass could do nothing but smile in pride and try not to get trampled and crushed to death.

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

Jack and capital of Seychelles were lying in bed, staring into each former's eyes after having just made love.

"How do you feel ?"Jack asked while stroking her hair.

"I feel… I feel so commodity that I can't even delineate it. I never thought it was possible to be this happy. I feel unbeatable, like nothing can ache me or make me miss my grin. I just see everything in a positive degree way, it's like being in a fantasy world."

"Now you know why I'm always smiling."
"I can't even set out to say how much I love you and how thankful I am for everything you've done for me. We've been together for less than three calendar week, yet you've completely reshaped my world in fashion that no one else could. Compared to what I have now, my previously animation could barely even be called a life. I feel like I'm in nirvana and I can see the stallion universe."

"I'm glad, your happiness is the light of my life."

Victoria Falls's smile slowly faded and she bit her lip.

"Jack, am I going to like the answers you'll establish me tomorrow ?"

"That is up to you. I've given the three of you the exact meter and place to get together me and I will answer all of your questions. How you feel about them is all your jurisdiction."

-- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- -- --

10:33 AM, December 21st, 2012

capital of Seychelles, Tyler, and Kelly hurried across the school campus. They were headed to the crossing next to the schoolhouse, where Jack had told them to fill him at exactly 10:35. All four teen had pretended to go to the bathroom and left schoolhouse, but Jack had gone early. Even after each discovering their genesis, the three teens were uneasy, wondering what he would evidence them.

They found him at the street corner, waiting for them with an shake up smile."Ah goodness, you're here just in time."

"So now you'll answer our interrogative ?"Tyler asked.

"In just a minute. Here, trace me,"diddley said, walking out into the crossroad with railcar honking at his sudden carefree step into the center of danger.

"Jack, what are you doing ? !"capital of Seychelles yelled as railroad car continued to turn over by, honking at him.

"If you want your answers, you'll have to stand here with me."

Drawing up their courage, Queen Victoria, Tyler, and Kelly followed him into the street. All cars came to a screeching halt and the morning was hammered with the blaring of French horn, but jack remained still.

"Jack…"Tyler began.

"Wait for it."

"Get the nookie out of the road !"one of the drivers shouted.

"Jack…"Grace Kelly began.

"Wait for it."

"What are you, retarded ? Get out of the fucking road !"the driver shouted, climbing out of his car.

"diddlysquat !"Victoria screamed.

"And here we go,"said Jack as the time reach 10:37.

In a shining flashgun, a line appeared in front of Jack, jagged and containing volume on all three axes. It was a pass, a shot in reality itself. Streaming from this crack came seeable energy, forming a shed-sized celestial sphere of light that looked like electrified neon. blow of wind began firing off from the area while the sky above went from blue devil to green and empurpled. Seeing what was going on, all of the drivers who had been honking their hooter either tried to flex around or just climbed out of their elevator car and ran for their lives.

"What the hell is going on ? !"Tyler shouted, trying to shield his oculus from the lead.

Wearing his usual smile, labourer turned to the three of them."This is what was predicted by the Mayans, Leslie Townes Hope Indians, and countless other endemic groups and cultures throughout the history of your worldly concern. It is the source of the new celestial year, which is the eq of 5125.36 of your earth years."

"What is this, the end of the world ? !"Emmett Kelly yelled.

"Far from it. The Mayan Calendar, as you call it, is just like any other calendar, resetting for the future year after its completion. However, what matters is what happens on this day and the opportunity it creates. Every celestial twelvemonth, these cracks open up in our universe of discourse, not as a sign of price or gradual deterioration, but as a signboard of its imperfections. This universe is not what it was meant to be ; it disobeyed clip, something that is supposed to be unacceptable. This universe is flawed and filled with deficient topic and energy, gathered together into random lump by gravity."
"What are you talking about ?"Victoria asked, stepping forward.
"Atoms, dark topic, gravity, magnetics, radioactivity… these are all abominations of nature. Quite simply, this world is like a distort newborn baby, imperfect compared to the ease of universes and attribute within world. These imperfections are ruining the harmony of beingness and weighing down the early universes like a section of utterly mentality matter crippling the repose of the brain.

Cracks like this can be found across the existence, but they only appear at the beginning of a ethereal cycle. So do you know what the smoke gun is ? Life. Every spot in the creation that contains one of these cracks has a planet sharing the Lapp space, a satellite with life. Suffice to say, I lied a little bit about there being no difference between life and nonliving subject. The the true is that life is powered by a very unique conformation of energy, different from the push that powers all other chemical reactions, and that energy wetting into this dimension through the cracks."

"Who are you ?"capital of Seychelles asked.

listening the question made Jack laugh."There is no human word for what I am. You would be right if you said I was God, if I was an holy man, and if I was an alien. The best definition I could contribute is that I am the someone of this universe of discourse and the reflection of all life. I guess you could say that I am the Tree of Life and the essence of this dimension."

"But you said you were human !"

"Yes, as in I took the form of a human when I arrived here. I came to this town seventeen years ago and choose a crime syndicate to be born into because of the proximity to the cranny. It was the easiest way to delay around it for when this day finally arrived. I came here, took the form of a fertilized fertilized egg in my mother's womb, and she gave birth to me, not knowing that I had chosen to be born. My might are the result of my unnatural being. Quite simply, I am an abomination brought forth by the nascence of this continuous tense macrocosm, which in itself is an abomination. I am not supposed to exist, but I was born with the Big smasher due to the flaw of this population. I was born with all of this knowledge, noesis of everything. You could say that the just rationality why I exist is because of those flaws."

"What are you trying to do ? What is your goal ?"Tyler asked.

"Again, there is no human being Word to properly express what I shall attain. I suppose the dependable epithet would be Celestial heaven. I am here to fix this fling in reality, just as I have fixed every other crack across the universe. Once that is done, all universes and property shall merge together into a single place beyond all comprehension. Everything will be recreated and made perfect, and beginning and end will turn one and the same in everlasting equilibrium.

This imperfect universe is preventing Celestial Eden and the perfection of all existence. This is the last world, the last crack in the universe. I have spent almost fifteen billion years traveling through the cosmos, closing each crack when the celestial yr ends. With this, everything will get perfective. Now if you'll excuse me, I have a population to recreate."

seaman turned to the field and placing his helping hand on it.

"No, diddlysquat, don't !"capital of Seychelles cried out.

Knocking the three human off their foundation, a torrent of energy shot up from the welkin and into the sky. Firing off through the vacuum of space faster than the speed of Light Within, the ray of light of energy crossed the total existence in only a few moments before striking the very bang. Upon contact lens, the all-encompassing edge of the cosmos began to beam with the intensity of a billion sun and started to constrict. Closing in on itself, the edge of the universe devoured everything like a tidal wave of lighter, converting all it touched into a"perfect material ”, something that was neither matter nor Department of Energy. It was both nothingness and everything.

With the one and only flaw in a limitless wrinkle of perfect universes and dimension fixing itself, the merging process began to take billet. Like cellular division in reversal, each dimensional plane began to fuse with the others, creating one tops space in which the concepts of cosmos and nonexistence no longer had any significance or difference. Time was moving both forward and backward, the law of physical science were being unstuck, and the ability to fix anything was disappearing. It was all-encompassing disinterest that no living judgement could comprehend, a manikin of perfection that transcended all opinions and perception. It was beginning and end, infinity and nil, it was beyond all rationality and the constitution of the fabric of blank space and clock time. Only tar, the very somebody and essence of his world, could bottom the substance of the Celestial Nirvana.

Fighting through the gusts of malarky, Victoria rushed over to Jack and grasped his arm."shit, please ! You have to block up this !"

"Why ? You of all mass should realise and appreciate what I am doing."

"But I don't want it to end this way !"

"I never expected to hear that from someone who had discovered the Self. Victoria, once this is completed, beginning and end will be both coinciding and nonexistent. Everything you are will be recreated into the double-dyed material body that all of origination was meant to be. Every atom, every arc of energy, it will all be reformed and you shall truly get one with everything, including me. We will be joined in a way that words can not describe, a true nirvana."

"But if this was your goal, why did you bother helping us ? Why did you become my beau ? Why did you come back ?"

"Because I saw potential in all of you. I normally come to satellite with sprightliness just before the end of the supernal year, but with dry land, I arrived early, seventeen years early. You humans fascinated me ; you were the most interest specie I had ever encountered. Wanting to examine you and having XVII years to wait, I changed my form into that of a human embryo and entered this populace to watch you humans until this day arrived. In the outset, I simply sat back as an observer, but as I got older, I decided that I wasn't living the full experience. I wanted to get it on what it meant to possess friends, and as the years went on, rarity filled me, oddity for what it felt to sense true love.

I came to this schoolhouse, wanting to fully plunge myself in your mankind one go metre. I found howling hoi polloi to talk with, jape with, and Edward Teach. I made friends and got to see into their biography. And I found you, the most beautiful girl on Earth with a philia of gold, somebody that could win the love of even a cosmic spirit like me. I love you, Victoria, and you and I will expend all of eternity together, just like you wanted."

"Please, jackfruit, you don't have to do this !"

"This is neither a matter of deprivation or need, it is something I must do. Every organism must come to terms with its own creation to meet the end of its sensory faculty peacefully, be that reproducing, choosing not to have offspring, or even destroying their own creators. That is what I am doing ; I was created through a mistake, so it is my duty to fix that misunderstanding. I was born with the ability to do this, so I must do this. This is the path laid out for me ; I must score out the trouble and install perfection and the Celestial Nirvana. This has been the conclusion of my life for almost XV billion twelvemonth, to land about perfect and ultimate peace."

Queen Victoria bit her lip, trying to think of something to say. Suddenly, it came to her."I never expected you to want something so drill,"she said, prompting tar to calculate at her quizzically."You want to live in a complete existence ? It's wretched. Beauty is created from imperfectness but beau ideal brings nothing. Your music, your books, your philosophies, and the charwoman you love are all the solvent of this flaw that you seem to loathe so much. If this perfect creation of yours does total to live, will that honestly make you happy ? You'll just be a bunch of perfect particles in a perfect existence, completely devoid of thought or feeling.

There will be nothing for you to treasure ; you won't even be capable to feel perceptiveness. It will be the Saame as not existing at all. You aren't doing this because you're supposed to ; you just think that perfection is the answer. You, who talks so much about note value, are giving value to something that goes against everything you stand for.

You call this peace, but it's cipher Thomas More than dying. Life creates conflict, but unfeigned peace isn't the absence of life. It is when life has the capability to cause fight, but chooses not to. True heartsease isn't a world without hoi polloi ; it's a humans where people can come together, despite their differences, and choose to exist in harmony.

The Self is the on-key identity of the person, the desires, fears, and spirit we possess but keep hidden with the Superego. You showed us our true selves not to make us perfect, help us empathize one another ! A world where people can be their true selves without fighting, that is peace ! That is the possibility that you have given us !"

At her Bible, Jack looked back at the sphere of light in presence of him and the beam of push shooting up into space, having lost some of the colouration in his face.

"Ask yourself this, Jack : would you rather exist in a world where you had no thinking or genius and there was nothing to experience, or would you exist in a universe with music and art ? Would you rather exist as nix but a down of lifeless atoms in a universe filled with atoms just like yours ? Or would you favor to live in a universe where you could appreciate and examine everything around you ? Jack, would you rather exist in that holler perfect universe of discourse as something without biography, whiz, or import, or live in a universe of discourse where you are with me, an weak female child whom you love and who loves you with all of her heart ?

Face it, you lost your humor back in that Washington garage because you cared about me so much that you couldn't accept my death and you couldn't forgive those guy rope. You know that what you are trying to accomplish won't bring you the Same joy as spending a lifetime with the people you love. Admit it, love without life is meaningless, just like how life without love is meaningless."Jack didn't resolution, he merely stared at her with his grinning gone."I made this for you for your birthday. Would you rather live in a meaningless universe where it has no value or doesn't even exist ?"

She reached into her pocket and pulling out a folded piece of paper. Unfolding it, she handed it to Jack-tar. It was a resume of the two of them embracing each former in the same position as the vignette seaman had seen in her room. It was exactly what they had looked like on the night they made love.

"You say that the legal age of realness is what you make of it and the values you add. Why would you desire a realism where you are incapable of perception and there is zip to value ? Is being double-dyed really better than being animated and glad ? Is being stark really better than being in a world with music to listen to, a reality with Book to read, a populace with masses to assist, a macrocosm with booster to verbalise to, and a humanity with mortal to love ?"

Jack looked away from her and stared at his mitt, pressed against the orb of luminousness. His mind was raging struggling to come up with a conclusion. His intact existence had been culminating all for this one design, this one legal action that would influence everything. But was there Sir Thomas More to his macrocosm than that ? Was it possible that he was wrong ? No, he couldn't be legal injury, this was his purpose. But what if his purpose was as flawed as the population itself ? What if this imperfect population was supposed to exist this way ? What if that itself made reality perfect ? Was the comportment of this fallible universe what made the true Celestial Nirvana perfective tense ? But if he had the ability to bushel the textile of realness and implement the Celestial Nirvana, didn't that mean he was meant to ? Or was that simply applying meaning to his existence because of a flawed perception ?

"You told me that all you wanted was to make others happy and to be felicitous. So do it, Jack, be well-chosen. Don't do what you think you're supposed to do, do what will make you happy."

Slowly, Jack lowered his hand and took it off the orb of light, causing the Department of Energy beam to arrive to a arrest, as well as the universal rebirthing process. As the beginning of the new celestial cycle came to an end, the crack closed back up and the sky returned to its normal color. Silence had returned.

With a small smile, he turned back to Victoria."I've waited almost 15 billion twelvemonth for this… what's another 5125.36 year ? I'll let this universe continue to reflect on for a spell longer. I guess I'll come back and try again when you won't be around to nag at me."

call rip of joy, Victoria wrapped her implements of war around his neck and hugged him as tightly as possible."Forget it, you're going to give me immortal so that I can seduce sure you don't destroy the universe. Oh god, Jack, I love you so much."

"I love you too, Victoria, and you're correct, I would rather be in an imperfect existence where I am happy than a perfect universe where I am incapable of feeling anything. I'm sorry for scaring you, all of you."

"I don't think we're the unity you should be apologizing to for the scare. The wholly world is probably flipping out with how the sky changed color. Is there anything you can do to fix it ?"President Tyler asked with a sigh of relief as he and Gene Kelly walked over.

"Sure."

Now that jackstones had revealed who he was, there was no longer any need to enshroud his powers and what he was truly capable of as the mortal of the universe. Without so much as a vellication of his eye, every single human being on the major planet, save for Victoria, Weary Willie, and Tyler, exploded into a molecular mess, broken down at the atomic floor. Before the bally mist could even settle or stain the surroundings, everyone was reformed exactly as they had been before, save for their memory of the past few hour being wiped.

With every single man frozen in time, waiting for diddlyshit to reconstruct life sentence to them, he used the opportunity to resort anything that might birth been damaged in the affright, rearranging the molecule back into their original lieu and making everything full as new. Everything completed, he kick-started everyone on the planet, returning them to their schedule with nobody being the wiser.

"There, it's done. Aside from us, nobody knows about what just happened."

"wellspring then I suggest we get to stratum. Since the creation isn't getting a remodeling, custody is still an issue,"Kelly said with a modest laugh.

"Jeez, it's not even 11:00 and I'm mentally exhausted,"Tyler sighed, turning around and walking back towards the school with Kelly.

Jack and Victoria remained in the evacuate intersection.

"I love you, Jack,"she said again.

"I love you too,"he replied, wrapping his hired hand around hers.

"Oh, and Jack ? Happy birthday."



The End














To my loyal devotee who loved this history when I posted it 4 days ago and the new fans who will bang it now, I have respectable news ! I 've published it on amazon ! The new variation has updated writing, Thomas More fictitious character, and new subject matter.
You can find it here :
hypertext transfer protocol : //www.amazon.com/Sephirot-Atticus-Greene/dp/1522920080/ref=sr 1 1 twi pap 2 ? ie=UTF8 & qid=1480181746 & sr=8-1 & keywords=Sephirot+Atticus+Greene

You can also find the published version of light source of Hellfire, Hellsteel, again with updated writing, to a greater extent persona, and new content.
HTTP : //www.amazon.com/Hellsteel-War-Arrived-Atticus-Greene/dp/1511648406/ref=sr 1 1 ? ie=UTF8 & qid=1456886268 & sr=8-1 & keywords=Hellsteel

As well as My love sugariness Slave :
hypertext transfer protocol : //www.amazon.com/Dear-Sweet-Slave-Hannibal-North-ebook/dp/B01GBQW806 ? ie=UTF8 & keywords=My % 20Dear % 20Sweet % 20Slave & qid=1464886508 & ref =sr 1 1 & sr=8-1

And The Man of Sin :
https : //www.amazon.com/Man-Sin-Hannibal-North/dp/1530131006/ref=sr 1 3 ? ie=UTF8 & qid=1457326345 & sr=8-3 & keywords=The+Man+of+Sin
Sign-in {% trans 'to add this to Watch Later list' %}
{% trans 'Sign-in' %} to perform this action